there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o very_o audiebant_fw-la wise_a man_n have_v err_v gross_o in_o this_o point_n for_o want_n of_o study_v â_o the_o state_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o its_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n 2._o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n assume_v without_o any_o humane_a person_n 3._o the_o difference_n between_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o person_n which_o subsist_v in_o it_o i_o believe_v aristotle_n do_v not_o study_v the_o first_o so_o exact_o as_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v and_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o know_v nothing_o of_o these_o two_o last_v most_o considerable_a point_n i_o shall_v not_o stand_v to_o show_v the_o vanity_n of_o personas_fw-la laurentius_n valla_n who_o seem_v to_o forget_v all_o his_o elegancy_n when_o he_o come_v to_o discourse_v of_o a_o person_n and_o draw_v his_o argument_n from_o the_o flourish_n of_o a_o orator_n or_o the_o several_a passion_n humour_n relation_n condition_n or_o office_n of_o man_n that_o be_v personate_v upon_o a_o stage_n and_o therefore_o this_o whiffler_n deserve_v to_o be_v hiss_v off_o from_o his_o stage_n for_o he_o do_v only_o make_v sport_n for_o atheist_n and_o familist_n by_o such_o ridiculous_a discourse_n and_o he_o be_v sufficient_o absurd_a when_o he_o stoop_v so_o low_a as_o to_o say_v that_o a_o person_n be_v a_o quality_n and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o triple_a quality_n in_o god_n and_o 374._o scaliger_n show_v his_o critical_a skill_n in_o divinity_n to_o purpose_n when_o he_o be_v so_o foolish_a as_o to_o say_v that_o a_o person_n do_v not_o signify_v a_o substance_n but_o a_o quality_n 5._o bellarmine_n be_v orthodox_n in_o this_o point_n and_o prove_v at_o large_a that_o the_o word_n person_n do_v usual_o signify_v a_o substance_n in_o very_a approve_a author_n both_o sacred_a and_o profane_a well_o may_v we_o then_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v not_o offend_v the_o curious_a ear_n of_o such_o as_o be_v the_o great_a master_n of_o language_n the_o orator_n person_n civilian_n grammarian_n and_o other_o when_o they_o say_v that_o a_o divine_a person_n do_v at_o least_o connote_v the_o substance_n or_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o the_o selfsame_a substance_n be_v in_o all_o three_o person_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v as_o gostavius_fw-la or_o mr._n fry_n will_v have_v it_o that_o there_o be_v three_o substance_n in_o the_o godhead_n because_o there_o be_v three_o person_n subsist_v in_o the_o godhead_n for_o the_o substance_n or_o nature_n be_v the_o same_o in_o all_o three_o person_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o person_n when_o we_o describe_v they_o not_o that_o we_o may_v show_v wherein_o they_o differ_v but_o that_o we_o may_v show_v wherein_o all_o three_o person_n agree_v and_o if_o we_o shall_v abstract_a the_o personality_n of_o these_o uncreated_a person_n from_o their_o divine_a substance_n or_o nature_n when_o we_o describe_v they_o we_o shall_v seem_v to_o rob_v they_o of_o their_o divinity_n even_o in_o the_o very_a description_n of_o they_o we_o must_v not_o say_v that_o a_o divine_a person_n be_v a_o mere_a coessentiaâes_fw-la relative_a propriety_n or_o a_o pure_a manner_n of_o be_v exist_v or_o subsist_v for_o every_o person_n be_v god_n and_o all_o three_o person_n but_o one_o jehovah_n one_o god_n they_o do_v imprudent_o destroy_v the_o divine_a and_o coessential_a trinunity_n who_o affirm_v the_o holy_a trinity_n to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o three_o propriety_n or_o three_o manner_n of_o subsist_v for_o what_o be_v that_o consubstantial_a trinunity_n of_o which_o the_o ancient_n speak_v but_o the_o single_a and_o infinite_a substance_n or_o essence_n of_o three_o divine_a subsistence_n or_o person_n if_o you_o leave_v out_o the_o divine_a essence_n or_o substance_n out_o of_o the_o definition_n how_o be_v it_o a_o consubstantial_a or_o coessential_a trinunity_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n all_o three_o do_v existunt_fw-la natural_o subsist_v in_o the_o same_o divine_a and_o undivided_a nature_n i_o must_v therefore_o describe_v divine_a person_n as_o divine_a person_n when_o i_o be_o to_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o they_o &_o uncreated_a person_n and_o if_o i_o describe_v they_o as_o divine_a person_n i_o must_v not_o abstract_n their_o personal_a propriety_n from_o their_o divine_a nature_n though_o what_o be_v personals_n personal_n may_v in_o some_o sense_n be_v affirm_v to_o be_v natural_o due_a to_o that_o particular_a person_n but_o beside_o those_o personal_a negavit_fw-la propriety_n or_o character_n whereby_o the_o father_n son_n and_o h._n ghost_n do_v appear_v even_o to_o our_o weak_a understanding_n to_o be_v three_o distinct_a subsistence_n the_o whole_a and_o undivided_a constituuntur_fw-la godhead_n dwell_v in_o every_o one_o of_o these_o three_o subsistence_n though_o it_o do_v subsist_v after_o a_o different_a manner_n in_o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o the_o father_n be_v god_n subsist_v after_o that_o peculiar_a manner_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o father_n now_o that_o peculiar_a manner_n of_o subsist_v superad_v to_o the_o divine_a nature_n do_v make_v a_o true_a distinction_n between_o the_o father_n and_o the_o other_o two_o subsistence_n but_o it_o make_v no_o composition_n at_o all_o either_o in_o the_o father_n or_o in_o the_o godhead_n hence_o 3._o it_o be_v that_o divers_a profound_a and_o orthodox_n writer_n maintain_v that_o a_o divine_a person_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o very_a divine_a essence_n itself_o modificate_v give_v i_o leave_v to_o explain_v this_o abstruse_a notion_n a_o little_a by_o give_v a_o instance_n in_o the_o 1._o personal_a principle_n god_n the_o father_n god_n the_o father_n be_v the_o first_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n distinguish_v from_o the_o son_n and_o spirit_n who_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n with_o he_o by_o his_o peculiar_a manner_n of_o subsistence_n singular_a relation_n &_o incommunicable_a property_n here_o be_v as_o they_o love_v to_o speak_v the_o habens_fw-la divine_a essence_n modificate_v with_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n of_o subsistence_n a_o singular_a relation_n and_o incommunicable_a property_n what_o this_o peculiar_a manner_n of_o subsistence_n singular_a relation_n and_o incommunicable_a property_n be_v i_o shall_v demonstrate_v when_o i_o come_v to_o treat_v of_o the_o distinction_n of_o these_o 3_o divine_a subsistence_n in_o the_o very_a next_o chapter_n i_o hope_v i_o need_v say_v no_o more_o to_o prove_v that_o a_o divine_a person_n do_v at_o least_o connote_v the_o substance_n essence_n nature_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o will_v not_o be_v safe_a to_o abstract_n the_o personality_n of_o a_o uncreated_a subsistence_n from_o that_o single_a and_o infinite_a nature_n which_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o all_o three_o subsistence_n i_o do_v not_o find_v the_o most_o raise_a independens_fw-la metaphysical_a wit_n very_o forward_o to_o define_v or_o describe_v a_o personality_n but_o they_o speak_v of_o a_o person_n in_o concreto_fw-la of_o a_o subsistent_n rather_o than_o a_o subsistence_n and_o of_o a_o suppositum_fw-la rather_o than_o a_o abstract_n suppositality_n the_o imperfect_a definition_n of_o boethius_n be_v common_o too_o common_o receive_v in_o the_o school_n and_o he_o say_v a_o person_n be_v a_o undivided_a substance_n they_o who_o have_v study_v the_o point_n more_o exact_o and_o correct_v his_o definition_n do_v all_o agree_v that_o a_o person_n be_v a_o undivided_a substance_n a_o understand_a substance_n a_o complete_a incommunicable_a independent_a substance_n which_o do_v not_o depend_v upon_o any_o thing_n else_o by_o way_n of_o inhesion_n adhaesion_n union_n or_o any_o other_o way_n for_o its_o sustentation_n this_o be_v the_o general_a and_o trinitatis_fw-la common_a opinion_n i_o know_v there_o be_v some_o private_a opinion_n as_o i_o may_v call_v they_o concern_v the_o formality_n of_o a_o person_n which_o i_o shall_v but_o point_v at_o and_o easy_o confute_v with_o the_o light_n &_o gentle_a touch_n of_o a_o run_a pen._n it_o be_v very_o absurd_a to_o say_v that_o a_o person_n be_v make_v complete_a in_o his_o subsistence_n by_o any_o 39_o accident_n or_o any_o formality_n arise_v from_o a_o heap_n of_o accident_n because_o a_o person_n be_v the_o most_o perfect_a substance_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v make_v complete_a by_o any_o accidental_a subsistence_n there_o be_v a_o manifest_a contradiction_n in_o that_o ridiculous_a expression_n 5._o aristotle_n say_v that_o singular_a substance_n do_v subsist_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d most_o proper_o principal_o perfect_o to_o subsist_v by_o its_o self_n be_v the_o most_o perfect_a kind_n of_o subsistence_n and_o that_o can_v be_v say_v to_o subsist_v by_o itself_o which_o do_v subsist_v by_o a_o heap_n of_o accident_n other_o say_v that_o a_o person_n be_v complete_v by_o a_o mere_a quodlibet_n negation_n but_o subsistence_n be_v positive_a though_o subsistence_n may_v be_v describe_v by_o
some_o expression_n that_o be_v negative_a the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n do_v supply_v and_o perform_v all_o that_o a_o humane_a person_n can_v perform_v to_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ._n now_o to_o say_v that_o the_o divine_a person_n of_o christ_n do_v supply_v the_o room_n of_o a_o 8._o negation_n and_o do_v all_o that_o a_o negation_n can_v do_v be_v to_o say_v it_o do_v very_o little_a or_o nothing_o at_o all_o final_o some_o say_v that_o a_o person_n be_v complete_v by_o the_o se._n existence_n of_o its_o nature_n but_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o a_o soul_n in_o the_o state_n of_o separation_n do_v exist_v and_o yet_o that_o soul_n be_v not_o a_o person_n nay_o never_o be_v a_o person_n at_o the_o first_o instant_n of_o its_o creation_n or_o union_n and_o it_o will_v be_v most_o absurd_a to_o say_v that_o the_o humane_a nature_n be_v assume_v by_o christ_n and_o hypostatical_o unite_v without_o or_o before_o the_o existence_n of_o that_o nature_n because_o it_o be_v unite_v before_o it_o have_v any_o humane_a subsistence_n and_o consequent_o before_o it_o have_v any_o existence_n if_o that_o subsistence_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o existence_n as_o these_o discourser_n suppose_v but_o it_o be_v high_a time_n to_o leave_v pursue_v of_o these_o night-wanderer_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o subsistence_n be_v a_o positive_a and_o substantial_a mode_n because_o the_o most_o perfect_a manner_n of_o be_v which_o we_o express_v as_o well_o as_o we_o can_v when_o we_o say_v a_o person_n do_v subsist_v by_o itself_o without_o union_n unto_o or_o dependence_n upon_o any_o thing_n else_o for_o its_o sustentation_n nay_o that_o it_o be_v uncapable_a of_o any_o such_o union_n though_o it_o be_v for_o the_o present_a in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n and_o therefore_o the_o schoolman_n usual_o say_v quod_fw-la subsistit_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la nec_fw-la est_fw-la nec_fw-la esse_fw-la potest_fw-la in_o alio_fw-la ullo_fw-la modo_fw-la quia_fw-la subsistere_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la sumitur_fw-la pro_fw-la perfectissimo_fw-la modo_fw-la subsistendi_fw-la per_fw-la se._n it_o be_v evident_a by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v that_o even_o create_a person_n be_v define_v by_o their_o substance_n or_o nature_n which_o be_v in_o stead_n of_o a_o genus_fw-la when_o we_o define_v a_o person_n in_o concreto_fw-la and_o when_o we_o speak_v oâ_n the_o formality_n of_o a_o person_n we_o say_v it_o be_v a_o substantial_a mode_n and_o the_o most_o perfect_a manner_n of_o subsist_v and_o therefore_o a_o create_a person_n be_v not_o complete_v by_o any_o quality_n or_o accident_n whatsoever_o now_o if_o a_o create_a person_n be_v a_o substance_n and_o the_o formality_n of_o a_o create_a person_n be_v substantial_a i_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o abstract_n a_o divine_a person_n from_o the_o divine_a substance_n or_o essence_n because_o a_o divine_a person_n can_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o divine_a nature_n as_o the_o humane_a nature_n may_v be_v from_o a_o humane_a person_n and_o though_o a_o praecisive_n abstraction_n do_v not_o lay_v any_o ground_n either_o for_o a_o rational_a negation_n or_o a_o real_a separation_n yet_o if_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v not_o consider_v and_o take_v notice_n of_o in_o the_o description_n of_o every_o divine_a person_n man_n will_v be_v apt_a to_o conceive_v that_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o person_n may_v be_v separate_v the_o scripture_n do_v not_o present_a any_o such_o abstract_n notion_n of_o the_o father_n son_n or_o holy_a ghost_n unto_o we_o but_o teach_v we_o to_o consider_v they_o as_o divine_a person_n that_o be_v person_n that_o have_v a_o divine_a nature_n for_o else_o we_o shall_v make_v a_o itas_fw-la trinity_n of_o modes_n no_o trinunity_n a_o 25._o trinity_n without_o god_n or_o godhead_n and_o give_v our_o adversary_n cause_n to_o say_v what_o they_o have_v say_v without_o cause_n contrary_a to_o their_o own_o principle_n as_o well_o as_o we_o eâ_n trinitatem_fw-la sine_fw-la deo_fw-la for_o even_o they_o themselves_o acknowledge_v the_o first_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n to_o be_v god_n it_o be_v our_o wise_a course_n therefore_o to_o describe_v every_o person_n as_o a_o divine_a person_n as_o god_n and_o acknowledge_v all_o three_o person_n to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n for_o we_o must_v not_o only_o consider_v three_o personality_n but_o three_o 2._o person_n and_o the_o same_o single_a godhead_n in_o all_o three_o person_n and_o all_o three_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n i_o must_v not_o treat_v of_o the_o first_o person_n simple_o as_o a_o father_n but_o as_o a_o divine_a and_o eternal_a father_n as_o god_n the_o father_n rom._n 15._o 6._o ephes._n 5._o 20._o coloss._n 2._o 2._o joh._n 17._o 3._o for_o god_n be_v to_o be_v so_o consider_v as_o he_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v by_o we_o and_o we_o be_v not_o to_o worship_v a_o abstract_n personality_n without_o reference_n to_o the_o godhead_n we_o must_v consider_v what_o be_v common_a as_o well_o as_o what_o be_v incommunicable_a we_o must_v treat_v of_o that_o which_o be_v absolute_a as_o well_o as_o of_o that_o which_o be_v relative_n and_o while_o we_o speak_v of_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n we_o must_v not_o forget_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o essence_n that_o so_o we_o may_v not_o hold_v forth_o a_o trinity_n of_o modes_n without_o distincta_fw-la the_o godhead_n or_o tempt_v weak_a head_n to_o dream_v of_o a_o trinity_n of_o go_n judicious_a mr._n calvin_n do_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o discourse_n much_o of_o create_v person_n and_o therefore_o describe_v none_o but_o a_o divine_a person_n and_o he_o will_v not_o adventure_v to_o abstract_n a_o uncreated_a personality_n from_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o which_o every_o of_o the_o three_o uncreated_a person_n do_v subsist_v in_o our_o most_o accurate_a definition_n of_o any_o create_a nature_n which_o we_o be_v best_a acquaint_v with_o we_o judge_v it_o reasonable_a to_o take_v in_o that_o which_o the_o nature_n define_v have_v common_a with_o other_o nature_n as_o well_o as_o that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o it_o alone_o and_o certain_o it_o be_v very_o fit_a in_o our_o description_n of_o every_o divine_a person_n to_o take_v in_o the_o nature_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o three_o person_n and_o not_o only_o what_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o any_o one_o i_o call_v a_o person_n say_v calvin_n a_o subsistence_n in_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n and_o then_o he_o descend_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o relation_n of_o a_o divine_a person_n to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o coessential_a person_n and_o his_o distinction_n from_o they_o by_o some_o incommunicable_a property_n it_o will_v be_v a_o very_a dangerous_a attempt_n then_o to_o treat_v of_o the_o divine_a person_n in_o such_o abstract_n expression_n as_o do_v only_o hold_v forth_o some_o curious_a notion_n about_o the_o relation_n of_o these_o person_n to_o dicitur_fw-la and_o distinction_n from_o one_o another_o without_o take_v notice_n that_o all_o three_o person_n ãâã_d coeternal_a and_o coequal_a because_o coessential_a if_o we_o will_v discourse_v sober_o of_o the_o godhead_n we_o must_v speak_v of_o it_o as_o one_o single_a infinite_a perfection_n common_a to_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o all_o three_o and_o none_o other_o the_o single_a godhead_n the_o whole_a godhead_n be_v iâ_n every_o single_a person_n and_o it_o be_v common_a to_o aâ_n three_o in_o a_o singular_a and_o glorious_a way_n for_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v not_o communicate_v to_o these_o three_o as_o a_o genus_fw-la to_o its_o species_n for_o it_o iâ_n undivided_a and_o indivisible_a nor_o as_o a_o speciââ_n to_o its_o individua_fw-la for_o it_o be_v not_o multiplicable_a nor_o as_o a_o totum_fw-la or_o whole_a to_o its_o part_n foâ_n the_o godhead_n have_v no_o part_n it_o be_v impartible_a and_o as_o have_v be_v say_v indivisible_a nay_o the_o godhead_n be_v not_o communicate_v so_o to_o any_o one_o person_n as_o a_o create_a nature_n toâ_n create_v person_n which_o may_v be_v separateâ_n from_o a_o create_a subsistence_n for_o the_o divinâ_n nature_n can_v possible_o be_v separate_v from_o all_o or_o any_o one_o of_o the_o divine_a subsistenceâ_n or_o person_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v noâ_n discourse_v of_o the_o godhead_n in_o such_o a_o notional_a way_n as_o if_o the_o godhead_n do_v exist_v out_o oâ_n the_o three_o person_n without_o any_o relative_a subsistence_n for_o that_o be_v clear_o to_o dream_v of_o somâ_n strange_a absolute_a god_n some_o who_o be_v neither_o father_n son_n nor_o holy_a ghost_n when_o we_o describe_v the_o godhead_n according_a to_o our_o beâ_n understanding_n we_o dare_v not_o abstract_a it_o from_o the_o three_o person_n but_o say_v that_o the_o godhead_n be_v one_o single_a godhead_n spiritual_a infinite_a essence_n in_o which_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n
we_o add_v a_o fit_a epithet_n and_o say_v the_o father_n be_v a_o divine_a person_n or_o a_o uncreated_a person_n and_o say_v the_o same_o of_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n the_o word_n person_n signify_v the_o most_o excellent_a kind_n of_o subsistent_n a_o understand_a subsistent_n as_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o all_o the_o master_n of_o language_n sacred_a and_o profane_a as_o have_v be_v prove_v and_o that_o place_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 11._o be_v very_o clear_a of_o all_o the_o derivation_n of_o persona_fw-la that_o please_v i_o corpus_fw-la best_o persona_fw-la quasi_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la una_fw-la because_o it_o do_v express_v the_o unity_n and_o excellency_n of_o a_o personal_a subsistence_n per_fw-la se_fw-la note_v the_o excellency_n because_o subsistere_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la note_v the_o most_o excellent_a kind_n of_o subsistence_n nay_o the_o word_n homo_fw-la person_n do_v express_v more_o excellency_n than_o the_o word_n subsistence_n alone_o do_v import_v for_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o say_v that_o a_o beast_n do_v subsist_v person_n but_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o say_v that_o a_o beast_n be_v a_o person_n because_o a_o person_n be_v a_o understand_a subsistent_n but_o neither_o of_o these_o 9_o word_n do_v express_v the_o excellency_n of_o that_o subsistence_n which_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n have_v in_o the_o godhead_n and_o therefore_o we_o do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o these_o three_o be_v person_n or_o subsistencâs_n but_o we_o say_v they_o be_v uncreated_a person_n divine_a subsistence_n person_n subsist_v in_o the_o divine_a nature_n person_n of_o the_o godhead_n that_o so_o we_o may_v take_v in_o all_o the_o excellency_n which_o these_o word_n subsistence_n and_o person_n do_v afford_v and_o then_o by_o other_o epithet_n superadd_a that_o excellency_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o leave_v out_o all_o that_o imperfection_n which_o be_v in_o create_v person_n and_o subsistence_n the_o word_n subsistence_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n heb._n 1._o 3._o the_o word_n person_n be_v in_o scripture_n apply_v to_o man_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 11._o who_o have_v a_o more_o excellent_a subsistence_n than_o beast_n a_o understand_a subsistence_n and_o therefore_o both_o athanasii_fw-la greek_a and_o latin_a father_n do_v at_o last_o agree_v to_o use_v the_o word_n person_n because_o it_o signify_v a_o understand_a subsistent_n and_o if_o you_o add_v divine_a or_o uncreated_a person_n than_o there_o be_v no_o danger_n of_o any_o mistake_n unless_o man_n will_v be_v so_o vain_a as_o to_o say_v the_o word_n person_n person_n do_v sometime_o signify_v a_o visible_a shape_n a_o outward_a form_n or_o appearance_n the_o countenance_n or_o gesture_n of_o a_o man_n or_o else_o some_o office_n relation_n or_o quality_n and_o say_v that_o we_o do_v make_v three_o shape_n countenance_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o godhead_n as_o sabellius_n servetus_n and_o such_o bold_a atheist_n as_o have_v suck_v in_o their_o poison_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v we_o do_v therefore_o vindicate_v the_o church_n of_o god_n from_o these_o insolent_a and_o groundless_a aspersion_n and_o free_o declare_v what_o we_o mean_v by_o person_n namely_o a_o understand_a subsistent_n every_o of_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n have_v a_o office_n and_o have_v a_o relation_n but_o no_o divine_a person_n be_v a_o office_n or_o a_o mere_a coessentialem_fw-la relation_n but_o the_o godhead_n do_v contain_v all_o relative_a as_o well_o as_o absolute_a perfection_n within_o itself_o as_o have_v be_v say_v person_n god_n as_o represent_v to_o we_o in_o scripture_n do_v as_o it_o be_v take_v upon_o he_o the_o person_n of_o a_o displease_a father_n and_o sometime_o of_o a_o well-pleased_n father_n but_o we_o do_v not_o say_v there_o be_v three_o such_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n for_o one_o divine_a person_n may_v sustain_v the_o person_n of_o a_o well-pleased_n father_n at_o one_o time_n and_o the_o person_n of_o a_o displease_a father_n at_o another_o and_o if_o any_o man_n will_v be_v so_o ridiculous_a we_o to_o conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o then_o one_o person_n may_v be_v two_o person_n i_o hope_v he_o will_v see_v his_o own_o vanity_n and_o be_v sensible_a of_o the_o equivocation_n by_o consider_v what_o have_v be_v say_v already_o in_o this_o very_a chapter_n when_o we_o say_v god_n do_v take_v upon_o he_o the_o person_n of_o a_o well-pleased_n father_n we_o speak_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n just_a as_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o eye_n and_o hand_n of_o god_n but_o we_o must_v be_v understand_v accommodant_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d after_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o become_v the_o infinite_a dignity_n and_o pure_a majesty_n of_o god_n if_o man_n do_v not_o wilful_o mistake_v truth_n they_o may_v then_o know_v what_o we_o mean_v by_o person_n when_o we_o say_v there_o be_v three_o uncreated_a person_n in_o the_o godhead_n the_o word_n person_n be_v in_o scripture_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o as_o long_o as_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o it_o be_v there_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o account_v that_o vertere_fw-la word_n or_o any_o other_o such_o like_a a_o exotic_a word_n because_o we_o find_v it_o very_o proper_a and_o pertinent_a to_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n in_o the_o sense_n which_o we_o have_v so_o often_o declare_v that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o mistake_n but_o a_o full_a agreement_n in_o such_o a_o high_a and_o weighty_a point_n arguamur_fw-la it_o be_v out_o of_o question_n that_o we_o may_v expound_v the_o scripture_n by_o word_n and_o phrase_n which_o be_v not_o in_o those_o very_a letter_n and_o syllable_n to_o be_v find_v in_o scripture_n as_o long_o as_o we_o do_v not_o affect_v a_o needless_a curiosity_n in_o invent_v new_a and_o obscure_a phrase_n &_o a_o rigid_a superstition_n in_o defend_v they_o for_o that_o will_v not_o conduce_v to_o edification_n but_o beget_v or_o foment_n a_o endless_a contention_n our_o expression_n must_v be_v sober_a and_o plain_a grave_n and_o useful_a such_o as_o may_v hold_v forth_o the_o godly_a and_o prudent_a simplicity_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v all_o that_o needs_o be_v say_v for_o the_o use_n of_o such_o word_n and_o phrase_n as_o be_v fit_a and_o necessary_a to_o be_v use_v in_o this_o and_o divers_a other_o obscure_a point_n there_o be_v some_o that_o mistake_v the_o attribute_n of_o god_n for_o person_n dream_v and_o they_o make_v more_o than_o three_o person_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v not_o go_v about_o to_o reckon_v up_o the_o innumerable_a absurdity_n which_o follow_v upon_o that_o one_o mistake_n vno_fw-la absurdo_fw-la dato_fw-la mille_fw-la sequuntur_fw-la i_o read_v indeed_o that_o sabellius_n conceive_v the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v different_a attribute_n of_o god_n but_o the_o orthodox_n christian_n desire_v he_o to_o remember_v that_o there_o be_v more_o than_o three_o divine_a âttributes_n and_o press_v he_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n do_v subsist_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n truth_n and_o then_o they_o will_v close_v with_o he_o and_o give_v the_o right_a hand_n of_o fellowship_n unto_o he_o the_o fraud_n and_o subtlety_n of_o arius_n sabellius_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o old_a heretic_n give_v the_o reverend_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n cause_n to_o use_v the_o word_n 28._o trinity_n coessential_a consubstantial_a and_o the_o like_a that_o they_o may_v more_o clear_o and_o full_o manifest_v this_o profound_a and_o glorious_a mystery_n and_o they_o who_o do_v wrangle_v about_o these_o word_n do_v indeed_o deny_v the_o mystery_n and_o thing_n itself_o and_o therefore_o do_v but_o manifest_v their_o pride_n fraud_n obstinacy_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o their_o damnable_a heresy_n when_o they_o quarrel_v with_o those_o eminent_a writer_n for_o make_v use_n of_o loqui_fw-la unwritten_a word_n &_o phrase_n upon_o so_o just_a and_o necessary_a occasion_n that_o the_o write_a truth_n may_v be_v more_o clear_o explain_v and_o full_o defend_v it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o man_n any_o fault_n at_o all_o to_o make_v truth_n plain_a unless_o in_o the_o delude_a judgement_n of_o such_o who_o be_v enemy_n to_o truth_n now_o we_o have_v remove_v the_o rubbish_n we_o begin_v to_o build_v a_o divine_a person_n be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o infinite_a subsistent_n describe_v relate_v indeed_o to_o those_o other_o uncreated_a person_n which_o subsist_v in_o the_o same_o divine_a nature_n with_o it_o but_o distinguish_v from_o those_o coessential_a person_n by_o its_o peculiar_a manner_n of_o subsistence_n order_n of_o subsist_v singular_a relation_n and_o incommunicable_a property_n in_o these_o few_o line_n there_o be_v matter_n enough_o to_o fill_v many_o sheet_n and_o i_o be_o to_o treat_v of_o the_o distinction_n of_o person_n at_o large_a in_o the_o next_o
chapter_n a_o divine_a person_n be_v spiritual_a confirm_v for_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n the_o father_n of_o spirit_n the_o spirit_n of_o spirit_n a_o infinite_a spirit_n and_o therefore_o have_v life_n the_o best_a of_o life_n nay_o be_v life_n itself_o in_o perfection_n and_o therefore_o we_o read_v of_o the_o understanding_n and_o will_n of_o god_n a_o understand_a life_n be_v the_o best_a life_n that_o we_o be_v acquaint_v with_o and_o the_o life_n of_o god_n be_v a_o subsist_v life_n every_o one_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v subsistent_a and_o therefore_o every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v subsist_v life_n we_o may_v then_o safe_o conclude_v that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o infinite_a subsistent_n i_o say_v subsistent_n to_o show_v that_o i_o do_v not_o abstract_n the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o person_n from_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o which_o the_o person_n do_v subsist_v herein_o all_o the_o three_o person_n do_v agree_v moreover_o every_o divine_a person_n have_v some_o relative_n perfection_n for_o they_o be_v mutual_o relate_v to_o one_o another_o final_o every_o divine_a person_n have_v some_o peculiar_a and_o incommunicable_a property_n but_o if_o we_o come_v to_o treat_v of_o any_o peculiar_a manner_n of_o subsist_v or_o the_o order_n of_o subsist_v or_o that_o singular_a relation_n which_o be_v properâo_o âo_z every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o or_o any_o certain_a âncommunicable_a property_n whereby_o any_o one_o person_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o rest_n âhen_o we_o must_v leave_v treat_v of_o what_o be_v common_a to_o all_o three_o person_n and_o show_v wherein_o these_o coessential_a person_n differ_v or_o whereby_o it_o do_v appear_v to_o we_o that_o they_o be_v distinguish_v we_o will_v therefore_o for_o order_n sake_n inquire_v resolve_v 1._o what_o distinction_n there_o be_v between_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o the_o divine_a person_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n 2._o what_o difference_n there_o be_v between_o âreated_v and_o uncreated_a person_n 3._o how_o these_o three_o uncreated_a person_n be_v distinguish_v from_o one_o another_o this_o question_n concern_v the_o distinction_n of_o the_o divine_a coessenâialem_fw-la nature_n and_o these_o three_o most_o glorious_a person_n which_o subsist_v in_o it_o be_v the_o most_o difficult_a point_n in_o all_o divinity_n ând_v therefore_o i_o humble_o beg_v the_o assistance_n of_o all_o these_o glorious_a person_n that_o i_o may_v conceive_v and_o write_v judicious_o and_o reverent_o of_o this_o profound_a and_o glorious_a mystery_n of_o faith_n i_o remember_v that_o excellent_a speech_n of_o judicious_a calvin_n non_fw-la minori_fw-la âeligione_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la nobis_fw-la loquendum_fw-la quam_fw-la cogitandum_fw-la sentio_fw-la quicquid_fw-la autem_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la a_o nobis_fw-la cogitamus_fw-la stultum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o quicquid_fw-la loquimur_fw-la insulsum_fw-la what_o ever_o we_o think_v or_o speak_v of_o our_o own_o head_n concern_v god_n will_v be_v like_o ourselves_o unsavourie_a foolish_a and_o vain_a no_o language_n be_v rich_a enough_o no_o word_n be_v significant_a enough_o to_o declare_v this_o profound_a mystery_n which_o the_o understanding_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n can_v comprehend_v nor_o the_o tongue_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n express_v if_o all_o the_o saint_n and_o angel_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v sit_v in_o council_n and_o communicate_v their_o notion_n to_o one_o another_o about_o this_o argument_n they_o will_v acknowledge_v this_o mystery_n to_o be_v not_o only_o inexplicable_a and_o unspeakable_a but_o unconceivable_a and_o incomprehensible_a 1._o concern_v the_o distinction_n which_o be_v between_o the_o divine_a nature_n person_n and_o a_o divine_a person_n it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o i_o have_v most_o studious_o decline_v the_o describe_v of_o a_o divine_a person_n in_o abstracto_fw-la for_o the_o reason_n mention_v above_o and_o i_o may_v add_v many_o other_o but_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o say_v that_o the_o most_o cleanly_a abstraction_n do_v but_o suggest_v a_o inadaequate_a conceit_n of_o a_o divine_a person_n person_n and_o when_o you_o abstract_n the_o nature_n of_o god_n from_o the_o personality_n man_n be_v apt_a to_o dream_v of_o some_o strange_a god_n that_o be_v neither_o father_n son_n nor_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o to_o create_v a_o new_a god_n or_o to_o conceive_v that_o the_o divine_a nature_n may_v as_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n do_v subsist_v in_o alieno_fw-la supposito_fw-la 2._o they_o who_o deny_v the_o trinity_n must_v if_o they_o be_v not_o worse_o than_o turk_n or_o socinian_o acknowledge_v question_n that_o god_n the_o father_n do_v subsist_v and_o therefore_o they_o be_v engage_v to_o show_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o essence_n and_o subsistence_n of_o the_o father_n as_o well_o as_o we_o be_v who_o believe_v the_o trinity_n but_o there_o be_v no_o great_a a_o distinction_n between_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n than_o there_o be_v between_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o father_n for_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v as_o impossible_a to_o be_v divide_v or_o multiply_v in_o two_o or_o three_o person_n as_o it_o be_v in_o one_o single_a and_o undivided_a person_n because_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v single_a and_o infinite_a and_o the_o divine_a person_n do_v mutual_o subsist_v in_o one_o another_o and_o all_o three_o person_n subsist_v in_o this_o single_a and_o undivided_a nature_n which_o be_v indivisible_a immultiplicable_a and_o most_o pure_o and_o singular_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a perfection_n in_o all_o three_o person_n and_o there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o most_o single_a absolute_a and_o infinite_a perfection_n 3._o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v subsistent_a necessary_o and_o perfect_o subsistent_a the_o most_o perfect_a manner_n of_o subsist_v by_o and_o of_o itself_o be_v due_a to_o the_o most_o perfect_a nature_n 4._o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v not_o indifferent_a to_o subsist_v in_o the_o father_n divinarum_fw-la son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n or_o out_o of_o they_o for_o in_o regard_n of_o its_o infinite_a perfection_n and_o actuality_n it_o can_v neither_o subsist_v without_o or_o otherwise_o then_o in_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n because_o the_o divine_a nature_n can_v subsist_v without_o all_o or_o any_o of_o that_o relative_n perfection_n which_o shine_v in_o these_o three_o glorious_a person_n who_o do_v all_o subsist_v in_o the_o same_o divine_a nature_n and_o yet_o mutual_o subsist_v in_o one_o another_o with_o all_o relative_n perfection_n the_o reason_n be_v most_o clear_a because_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v infinite_a in_o perfection_n must_v needs_o contain_v and_o comprehend_v all_o relative_n as_o well_o as_o all_o absolute_a perfection_n 5._o god_n be_v not_o compound_v as_o angel_n be_v of_o nature_n and_o subsistence_n for_o whatsoever_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o god_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o god_n do_v not_o subsist_v by_o the_o superad_n of_o any_o thing_n or_o manner_n of_o a_o thing_n any_o modus_fw-la that_o be_v as_o the_o school_n speak_v extraessential_a or_o real_o distinct_a and_o separable_a from_o the_o essence_n and_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o we_o have_v former_o show_v that_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n be_v intrinsical_o necessary_a and_o infinite_o perfect_a and_o therefore_o the_o most_o perfect_a manner_n of_o subsist_v by_o and_o of_o it_o selâ_n be_v due_a to_o the_o most_o perfect_a nature_n 6._o although_o man_n and_o angel_n be_v not_o able_a to_o comprehend_v 34._o much_o less_o express_v this_o incomprehensible_a mystery_n yet_o we_o may_v set_v satisfactory_a bound_n to_o our_o thought_n and_o discourse_n by_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v one_o and_o that_o all_o three_o person_n be_v one_o and_o therefore_o we_o do_v conclude_v that_o as_o the_o infinite_a perfection_n and_o actuality_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n do_v require_v three_o subsistence_n because_o this_o infinite_a perfection_n do_v contain_v all_o relative_n as_o well_o as_o all_o absolute_a perfection_n so_o do_v the_o single_a and_o most_o singular_a nature_n of_o god_n require_v that_o these_o three_o glorious_a person_n subsist_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n now_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o oneness_a or_o singleness_n of_o god_n nature_n do_v well_o agree_v with_o the_o infinitness_n of_o his_o nature_n because_o there_o can_v be_v no_o multiplication_n of_o that_o which_o be_v infinite_n there_o can_v be_v two_o or_o three_o infinite_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v needs_o conclude_v that_o these_o three_o subsistent_n be_v one_o infinite_a god_n subsist_v with_o all_o absolute_a and_o relative_n perfection_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n
be_v the_o cause_n of_o itself_o or_o its_o own_o effect_n for_o the_o cause_n be_v before_o the_o effect_n 175._o and_o nothing_o can_v be_v before_o and_o after_o itself_o and_o there_o be_v a_o friendly_a opposition_n between_o correlate_n the_o father_n can_v be_v his_o own_o son_n but_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o have_v be_v allege_v by_o these_o critical_a disputant_n still_o it_o hold_v good_a that_o the_o godhead_n be_v not_o communicate_v to_o god_n the_o father_n by_o any_o person_n create_v or_o uncreated_a and_o the_o first_o person_n do_v not_o receive_v his_o personal_a subsistence_n from_o any_o other_o person_n by_o generation_n spiration_n or_o any_o other_o way_n but_o i_o must_v not_o dwell_v upon_o this_o argument_n vii_o the_o uncreated_a person_n be_v sufficient_o distinguish_v by_o their_o personal_a and_o inward_a relation_n relation_n but_o we_o must_v not_o conceive_v that_o there_o be_v as_o many_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n as_o there_o be_v relation_n for_o the_o father_n be_v relate_v to_o the_o son_n and_o to_o the_o spirit_n 134._o and_o the_o son_n be_v relate_v to_o the_o father_n and_o to_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v relate_v to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n but_o there_o be_v a_o friendly_a opposition_n evidence_v by_o some_o relation_n which_o do_v help_v together_o with_o the_o action_n order_n and_o property_n above_o mention_v to_o demonstrate_v some_o kind_n of_o distinction_n between_o the_o person_n the_o son_n as_o he_o be_v a_o son_n be_v relative_o oppose_v to_o the_o father_n who_o beget_v he_o and_o so_o the_o spirit_n as_o proceed_v by_o spiration_n be_v relative_o oppose_v to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n who_o do_v both_o join_v in_o breathe_v forth_o the_o holy_a spirit_n relation_n distinguish_v as_o proper_a and_o opposite_a i_o may_v discourse_v concern_v the_o order_n of_o these_o person_n in_o work_v as_o well_o as_o of_o their_o order_n in_o subsist_v something_o may_v be_v speak_v of_o the_o peculiar_a manner_n of_o their_o work_a ad_fw-la extra_fw-la and_o much_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n to_o declare_v he_o to_o be_v distinct_a from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o spirit_n and_o something_o of_o the_o effusion_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o i_o have_v say_v enough_o to_o evidence_n that_o these_o uncreated_a person_n be_v distinguish_v person_n what_o kind_n of_o distinction_n there_o be_v between_o they_o i_o be_o now_o to_o show_v and_o that_o i_o may_v be_v brief_a and_o plain_a in_o the_o open_n of_o this_o weighty_a point_n i_o shall_v lay_v down_o the_o truth_n clear_o in_o some_o few_o proposition_n 1._o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o essential_o distinguish_v for_o christ_n and_o his_o father_n be_v one_o orthod_n john_n 10._o 30._o and_o all_o three_o be_v essential_o one_o 1_o john_n 5._o 7._o the_o synod_n of_o chalcedon_n determine_v that_o christ_n be_v coessential_a with_o his_o father_n according_a to_o his_o divinity_n and_o coessential_a with_o we_o according_a to_o his_o humanity_n but_o the_o natural_a union_n between_o we_o and_o christ_n do_v only_o prove_v a_o specifical_a unity_n but_o christ_n and_o his_o father_n have_v one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a divine_a and_o undivided_a essence_n he_o must_v acknowledge_v more_o god_n who_o hold_v that_o the_o son_n and_o spirit_n have_v another_o or_o different_a kind_n of_o godhead_n from_o the_o father_n absurdum_fw-la the_o arrian_n do_v divide_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o the_o sabellian_o do_v confound_v their_o person_n but_o christian_n acknowledge_v and_o maintain_v that_o there_o be_v three_o person_n and_o but_o one_o single_a divine_a nature_n in_o the_o bless_a trinity_n only_o the_o second_o person_n do_v assume_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n that_o he_o may_v heal_v our_o nature_n and_o save_v our_o person_n 2._o these_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v not_o distinguish_v realiter_fw-la separabiliter_fw-la that_o be_v they_o be_v not_o so_o distinguish_v samosaten_n as_o that_o they_o can_v be_v divide_v or_o separate_v one_o from_o another_o as_o create_v person_n and_o thing_n may_v inveniri_fw-la these_o three_o coessential_a person_n be_v omnipresent_v they_o do_v all_o three_o subsist_v in_o the_o selfsame_a omnipresent_v nature_n nay_o they_o do_v all_o three_o subsist_v in_o one_o another_o without_o any_o contraction_n commixtion_n or_o confusion_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o the_o 161_o 162._o and_o the_o follow_a page_n of_o this_o book_n these_o coessential_a subsisteâts_n can_v be_v separate_v or_o divide_v any_o more_o than_o their_o indivisible_a and_o infinite_a essence_n can_v be_v divide_v or_o multiply_v 3_o these_o three_o uncreated_a person_n be_v true_o distinguish_v this_o proposition_n be_v full_o prove_v already_o in_o this_o very_a chapter_n donatum_fw-la i_o know_v it_o will_v be_v expect_v by_o some_o that_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o these_o three_o person_n be_v distinguish_v real_o but_o i_o shall_v humble_o desire_v they_o to_o consider_v that_o some_o have_v by_o that_o expression_n take_v occasion_n to_o exercise_v their_o wanton_a wit_n in_o cavil_v against_o this_o deep_a and_o glorious_a mystery_n to_o the_o great_a prejudice_n of_o this_o weighty_a truth_n if_o they_o be_v real_o distinguish_v say_v some_o than_o they_o differ_v essential_o or_o tanquam_fw-la res_fw-la &_o res_fw-la than_o they_o may_v be_v separate_v say_v other_o than_o there_o be_v three_o god_n say_v a_o three_o it_o be_v too_o well_o know_v what_o sport_n atheist_n have_v make_v upon_o this_o advantage_n and_o true_o it_o be_v much_o at_o one_o whether_o man_n do_v profess_v themselves_o atheist_n or_o tritheite_n for_o he_o who_o do_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v three_o god_n may_v when_o he_o please_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o god_n at_o all_o vorstius_n press_v those_o that_o call_v the_o distinction_n between_o the_o person_n real_a after_o this_o manner_n essentiam_fw-la if_o the_o three_o person_n be_v real_o distinguish_v than_o they_o be_v tres_fw-fr res_fw-la three_o real_a thing_n for_o the_o multiplication_n of_o person_n be_v real_a and_o therefore_o the_o son_n be_v real_o distinct_a from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o spirit_n from_o both_o they_o must_v needs_o have_v three_o essence_n real_o distinct_a and_o if_o they_o be_v tres_fw-fr res_fw-la than_o either_o three_o substance_n or_o three_o accident_n negamus_fw-la but_o the_o reform_a divine_n can_v say_v vorstius_n grant_v that_o they_o be_v three_o accident_n because_o they_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o accident_n in_o god_n etc._n and_o if_o they_o be_v three_o substance_n than_o there_o be_v say_v he_o three_o go_n valentinus_n gentilis_fw-la and_o some_o minister_n of_o transylvania_n reason_n much_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n i_o know_v not_o whether_o master_n fry_n do_v ever_o read_v any_o of_o their_o write_n but_o sure_o i_o be_o he_o have_v converse_v with_o some_o of_o that_o persuasion_n or_o else_o his_o carnal_a reason_n be_v of_o near_a kin_n to_o they_o for_o upon_o this_o very_a ground_n mr._n fry_n do_v adventure_v to_o explode_v three_o distinct_a person_n or_o subsistency_n out_o of_o his_o creed_n 23._o but_o he_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o explode_v they_o out_o of_o the_o godhead_n he_o may_v soon_o explode_v himself_o out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n for_o if_o he_o take_v away_o the_o divine_a person_n of_o christ_n he_o take_v away_o the_o foundation_n of_o christianity_n but_o have_v show_v he_o his_o danger_n i_o desire_v to_o satisfy_v his_o reason_n awaken_v his_o faith_n &_o settle_v his_o conscience_n in_o this_o weighty_a point_n 9_o if_o he_o will_v deny_v his_o carnal_a reason_n and_o not_o require_v any_o example_n to_o illustrate_v a_o mystery_n above_o reason_n and_o beyond_o example_n master_n fry_n will_v tell_v we_o news_n indeed_o if_o he_o can_v make_v it_o good_a that_o any_o minister_n or_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o england_n do_v make_v jesus_n christ_n a_o distinct_a god_n from_o god_n the_o father_n 22._o 2._o he_o may_v do_v well_o to_o publish_v those_o reason_n 236._o which_o move_v he_o and_o the_o other_o he_o speak_v of_o to_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n 3._o he_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o these_o three_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v equal_o god_n pag._n 21._o let_v he_o consider_v his_o own_o confession_n these_o three_o what_o be_v these_o three_o be_v they_o three_o god_n no_o that_o he_o do_v abominate_a be_v they_o three_o accident_n no_o that_o be_v absurd_a be_v they_o three_o substance_n if_o so_o then_o create_v or_o uncreated_a not_o create_v for_o that_o he_o say_v none_o will_v affirm_v be_v they_o three_o uncreated_a substance_n no_o say_v he_o for_o than_o they_o will_v consequent_o be_v three_o god_n p._n 23._o i_o hope_v by_o
this_o only_a true_a god_n ãâã_d who_o be_v god_n by_o nature_n do_v subsist_v and_o if_o we_o will_v seek_v after_o he_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o he_o do_v not_o subsist_v very_o far_o from_o any_o of_o we_o act._n 17._o 27._o but_o the_o godhead_n do_v not_o subsist_v out_o of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n for_o all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o selfsame_a godhead_n be_v in_o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o and_o therefore_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v attribute_v to_o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o in_o holy_a writ_n subsistence_n 1._o to_o the_o father_n rom._n 7._o 25._o rome_n 8._o 3._o 2._o to_o the_o son_n act._n 20._o 28._o tit._n 2._o 13._o 1_o tim._n 3._o 16._o 1_o tim._n 6_o 15_o 16._o 3._o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n act._n 5._o 3_o 4._o ps._n 95._o 3._o 8_o 9_o compare_v with_o heb._n 3._o 1_o cor._n 3._o 16_o 17_o heb._n 1._o 1._o compare_v with_o 2_o pet._n 1._o 21._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 5_o 6._o and_o when_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v special_o attribute_v to_o the_o father_n in_o regard_n of_o order_n and_o that_o gracious_a dispensation_n which_o be_v by_o consent_n of_o all_o three_o vouchsafe_v for_o our_o salvation_n the_o son_n and_o spirit_n be_v not_o exclude_v as_o we_o shall_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o this_o very_a chapter_n 1._o the_o eternal_a godhead_n do_v subsist_v in_o the_o father_n father_n for_o we_o read_v of_o his_o subsistence_n heb._n 1._o 3._o christ_n be_v the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o father_n subsistence_n or_o person_n as_o we_o do_v common_o translate_v the_o word_n but_o i_o do_v not_o hear_v that_o any_o but_o gross_a atheist_n have_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o deny_v the_o subsistence_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o therefore_o i_o need_v not_o superadde_a any_o thing_n to_o so_o plain_a a_o text._n 2._o the_o same_o godhead_n do_v subsist_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n son_n who_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o father_n because_o he_o do_v subsist_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n phil._n 2._o 6._o the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v best_a render_v subsist_v in_o that_o place_n because_o there_o be_v a_o comparison_n there_o between_o two_o subsistence_n or_o person_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o therefore_o the_o son_n count_v it_o no_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o father_n ãâã_d because_o he_o subsist_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n he_o have_v the_o same_o divine_a nature_n the_o same_o godhead_n with_o the_o father_n &_o all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v true_o 9_o real_o bodily_a in_o the_o son_n for_o body_n be_v oppose_v to_o shadow_n nay_o it_o may_v be_v render_v thus_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v personal_o in_o the_o son_n for_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v many_o time_n signify_v a_o person_n and_o therefore_o some_o learned_a man_n take_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o be_v as_o much_o as_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v real_o in_o the_o subsistence_n or_o person_n of_o the_o son_n col._n â_o 9_o christ_n be_v the_o illustrious_a brightness_n of_o his_o father_n glory_n the_o lively_a character_n of_o his_o father_n subsistence_n or_o person_n heb._n 1._o 3._o christ_n be_v not_o the_o character_n of_o his_o own_o subsistence_n but_o of_o his_o father_n subsistence_n and_o therefore_o the_o son_n have_v a_o peculiar_a subsistence_n distinct_a from_o the_o subsistence_n of_o his_o father_n christ_n be_v the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o father_n person_n and_o therefore_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n be_v distinct_a from_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n for_o no_o person_n be_v the_o image_n or_o character_n of_o itself_o concern_v the_o word_n subsistence_n or_o person_n i_o shall_v speak_v full_o in_o the_o two_o next_o chapter_n and_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o the_o divine_a subsistence_n or_o person_n do_v infinite_o excel_v the_o subsistence_n or_o person_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o shall_v clear_o prove_v that_o the_o godhead_n do_v subsist_v in_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n the_o godhead_n do_v subsist_v in_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v before_o the_o beginning_n god_n joh._n 1._o 1._o be_v do_v note_n what_o be_v past_a &_o therefore_o have_v his_o be_v before_o the_o begin_n of_o time_n and_o that_o his_o eternal_a be_v be_v a_o divine_a be_v be_v clear_a because_o eternal_a and_o because_o it_o be_v not_o only_o say_v that_o he_o be_v with_o god_n before_o the_o beginning_n but_o he_o be_v god_n and_o therefore_o it_o do_v clear_o follow_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o same_o eternal_a god_n with_o his_o father_n for_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v more_o than_o one_o god_n as_o i_o shall_v clear_o demonstrate_v before_o i_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n i_o wonder_v at_o the_o impudent_a blasphemy_n of_o some_o who_o pretend_v to_o be_v saint_n in_o these_o day_n of_o error_n and_o vanity_n and_o yet_o be_v bold_a to_o affirm_v that_o they_o themselves_o be_v as_o well_o and_o as_o true_o god_n as_o jesus_n christ_n because_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o have_v their_o be_v in_o god_n act._n 17._o 28._o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n 2_o pet._n 1._o 4._o and_o be_v one_o with_o christ_n joh._n 17._o 21_o 22_o 23_o 26._o i_o shall_v entreat_v the_o man_n of_o this_o persuasion_n to_o consider_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o rom._n 9_o 5._o god_n manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n divine_a 1_o tim._n 3._o 16._o the_o bless_a and_o only_a potentate_n the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n who_o only_o have_v immortality_n etc._n etc._n to_o who_o honour_n and_o power_n everlasting_a be_v ascribe_v 1_o tim._n 6._o 16._o he_o be_v the_o great_a god_n tit._n 2._o 13._o the_o true_a god_n 1_o joh._n 5._o 20._o dare_v any_o mortal_a man_n lie_v claim_v to_o these_o title_n and_o this_o honour_n to_o which_o of_o the_o saint_n or_o angel_n do_v god_n say_v at_o any_o time_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n the_o heir_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o illustrious_a brightness_n of_o my_o glory_n and_o lively_a character_n of_o my_o person_n thy_o throne_n o_o god_n be_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o and_o all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n shall_v worship_v thou_o heb._n 1_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o clear_a and_o plain_a that_o i_o be_o even_o almost_o ashamed_a to_o write_v more_o upon_o this_o argument_n and_o yet_o i_o be_o encourage_v and_o even_o provoke_v to_o proceed_v jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o wonderful_a child_n a_o child_n and_o yet_o a_o father_n the_o father_n of_o eternity_n maximum_fw-la a_o child_n and_o yet_o a_o counsellor_n the_o wise_a of_o all_o counselor_n for_o he_o be_v wisdom_n itself_o a_o child_n and_o yet_o a_o god_n a_o mighty_a god_n isa._n 9_o 6._o certain_o this_o one_o text_n be_v sufficient_a to_o put_v they_o to_o the_o blush_n who_o presume_v to_o compare_v themselves_o with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o mighty_a god_n jehovah_n vero_fw-la be_v a_o title_n proper_a and_o peculiar_a unto_o god_n isa._n 43._o 11_o 12._o jehovah_n be_v the_o only_a saviour_n the_o only_a god_n &_o psal._n 83._o 18._o that_o man_n may_v know_v that_o thou_o who_o name_n alone_o be_v jehovah_n be_v the_o most_o high_a over_o all_o the_o earth_n but_o the_o lord_n christ_n be_v jehovah_n and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n christ_n be_v god_n jehovah_n sit_v on_o a_o throne_n in_o majesty_n and_o glory_n isa._n 6._o 1_o 3_o 5_o 8._o but_o the_o lord_n christ_n be_v this_o jehovah_n as_o the_o apostle_n assure_v we_o joh._n 12._o 41_o 42_o the_o lord_n christ_n be_v that_o jehovah_n to_o who_o every_o knee_n must_v bow_v as_o appear_v by_o compare_v isa._n 45._o 21_o 22_o 23_o 24_o 25._o with_o rom._n 14._o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12._o and_o phil._n 2._o 6_o 9_o 10_o 11._o the_o like_a be_v clear_a by_o compare_v psal._n 102._o 19_o 22_o 25_o 26._o with_o heb._n 1._o 10_o 11_o 12._o once_o more_o compare_v num._n 14._o 26_o 27._o with_o 1_o cor._n 10._o 9_o 10._o &_o num._n 21._o 6._o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n be_v so_o glorious_o describe_v rev._n 1._o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o he_o be_v alpha_n and_o omega_n the_o beginning_n and_o the_o end_n which_o be_v which_o be_v and_o which_o be_v to_o come_v the_o almighty_a and_o therefore_o he_o be_v jehovah_n for_o the_o apostle_n do_v in_o that_o place_n and_o so_o to_o the_o end_n of_o that_o chapter_n insist_v upon_o these_o and_o the_o like_a expression_n which_o do_v comprise_v in_o they_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o that_o divine_a and_o glorious_a title_n of_o jehovah_n i_o may_v far_o insist_v upon_o this_o argument_n and_o
but_o one_o only_a god_n they_o be_v consubstantial_a coequal_a coeternal_a they_o have_v one_o nature_n mind_n will_n power_n godhead_n some_o b_o of_o the_o ancient_n who_o mean_v well_o say_v there_o be_v three_o substance_n but_o they_o mean_v three_o subsistence_n or_o person_n as_o hilary_n expound_v they_o for_o say_v he_o they_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o assert_v three_o different_a essence_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o such_o as_o be_v more_o wary_a in_o their_o expression_n do_v use_v the_o word_n subsistence_n and_o say_v that_o there_o be_v three_o subsistence_n but_o one_o substance_n or_o essence_n in_o this_o divine_a trinunity_n this_o be_v the_o first_o of_o all_o the_o commandment_n to_o acknowledge_v one_o only_a god_n mark_v 12._o 29._o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o mediator_n to_o intercede_v so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n to_o justify_v and_o intercede_v unto_o for_o justification_n 1_o tim._n 2._o 5._o rome_n 3._o 30._o gal._n 3._o 20._o it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n who_o command_v heaven_n and_o earth_n deut._n 4._o 35_o 39_o isa._n 37._o 16._o the_o god_n of_o the_o heathen_n be_v false_a god_n dunghill-god_n or_o devill-god_n magistrate_n be_v but_o mortal_a god_n they_o must_v die_v and_o rise_v to_o judgement_n and_o hold_v up_o their_o hand_n at_o the_o tribunal_n of_o jehovah_n psal._n 86._o 8_o 9_o 10._o psal._n 82_o 6_o 7._o 1_o cor._n 8._o 6._o i_o prove_v this_o point_n at_o large_a because_o i_o perceive_v by_o mr._n fry_n his_o sad_a account_n we_o be_v much_o misconstrue_v in_o this_o weighty_a point_n as_o if_o by_o acknowledge_v three_o distinct_a subsistence_n we_o do_v create_v two_o new_a god_n and_o affirm_v jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v two_o distinct_a god_n both_o from_o the_o father_n and_o from_o one_o another_o but_o we_o be_v no_o subsistentiam_fw-la tritheite_n we_o acknowledge_v a_o trinunity_n as_o well_o as_o a_o trinity_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o error_n of_o the_o tritheite_n we_o believe_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o i_o never_o read_v of_o the_o trinity_n of_o the_o godhead_n in_o english_a until_o i_o read_v it_o in_o the_o title_n of_o mr._n 22._o fry_v his_o opinion_n which_o he_o deliver_v to_o the_o house_n and_o have_v since_o print_v and_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n unicam_fw-la we_o do_v believe_v that_o god_n be_v one_o most_o single_o and_o singular_o one_o and_o a_o only_a one_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n be_v not_o a_o generical_a or_o a_o specifical_a unity_n but_o a_o most_o singular_a unity_n which_o i_o need_v not_o call_v a_o deus_fw-la numerical_a unity_n as_o some_o do_v i_o have_v rather_o call_v it_o the_o most_o single_a singular_a and_o perfect_a unity_n as_o some_o profound_a divine_n do_v who_o have_v tell_v i_o what_o i_o have_v read_v in_o other_o that_o i_o have_v need_n be_v very_o curious_a in_o the_o delivery_n of_o this_o weighty_a point_n all_o the_o three_o person_n have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o single_a and_o infinite_a godhead_n and_o therefore_o must_v needs_o mutual_o subsist_v in_o one_o another_o because_o they_o be_v all_o three_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a god_n three_o consubstantial_a coessential_a coeternal_a coequal_a person_n be_v distinguish_v but_o not_o divide_v be_v unite_v discernuntur_fw-la but_o not_o confound_v unite_v in_o their_o ãâã_d one_o nature_n not_o confound_v in_o their_o distinct_a subsistence_n nay_o though_o their_o subsistence_n be_v in_o one_o another_o yet_o their_o subsistence_n be_v distinct_a but_o their_o nature_n most_o uniâa_fw-la singular_o the_o same_o nay_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v as_o problem_n singular_a as_o any_o one_o of_o the_o single_a subsistence_n and_o yet_o whatever_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v infinita_fw-la common_a to_o all_o three_o of_o these_o divine_a subsistence_n and_o the_o divine_a nature_n do_v not_o subsist_v out_o of_o these_o three_o divine_a subsistence_n but_o the_o more_o we_o deliver_v concern_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n the_o more_o advantage_n do_v the_o socinian_o hope_v to_o gain_v for_o the_o justify_n of_o their_o blasphemous_a dream_n for_o âf_o this_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n be_v not_o only_o motional_a but_o real_a and_o god_n be_v most_o single_o and_o singular_o one_o and_o a_o only_a one_o as_o have_v be_v prove_v why_o then_o say_v they_o we_o will_v be_v bold_a to_o urge_v a_o invincible_a argument_n to_o prove_v that_o god_n the_o father_n alone_o be_v god_n and_o therefore_o neither_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v true_o and_o proper_o god_n by_o nature_n god_n the_o father_n alone_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n but_o neither_o the_o son_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n the_o father_n ergo_fw-la neither_o the_o son_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o proposition_n that_o the_o father_n alone_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n they_o cite_v some_o of_o those_o place_n which_o i_o have_v allege_v to_o prove_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n 6._o but_o they_o lie_v most_o weight_n upon_o john_n 17._o 3._o 6._o behold_v say_v they_o a_o plain_a acknowledgement_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o etc._n jesus_n christ_n 13._o christ_n do_v acknowledge_v his_o father_n to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o therefore_o do_v exclude_v both_o himself_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a god_n and_o god_n the_o father_n alone_o be_v that_o only_a true_a god_n these_o subtle_a heretic_n be_v guilty_a of_o a_o pitiful_a piece_n of_o sophistry_n in_o the_o draw_v up_o of_o this_o argument_n which_o be_v more_o full_a of_o blasphemy_n than_o wit_n for_o observe_v 1._o our_o saviour_n do_v not_o say_v large_a that_o we_o may_v know_v deum_fw-la thou_o only_o to_o be_v the_o true_a god_n but_o that_o we_o may_v know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n for_o as_o athanasius_n say_v well_o we_o must_v know_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n also_o because_o christ_n and_o so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n also_o be_v est_fw-la one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n with_o the_o father_n all_o three_o person_n be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n for_o though_o they_o essentialiter_fw-la differ_v in_o subsistence_n they_o do_v not_o differ_v in_o nature_n they_o have_v all_o of_o they_o one_o and_o the_o same_o singular_a godhead_n the_o selfsame_a divine_a nature_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a spirit_n one_o jehovah_n one_o god_n who_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n god_n bless_v for_o ever_o now_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n do_v differ_v essential_o because_o they_o differ_v personal_o for_o these_o three_o be_v âne_n 1_o john_n 5._o 7._o one_o god_n who_o be_v the_o only_a ârue_a god_n the_o deus_fw-la father_n be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n behold_v the_o predicate_v in_o that_o proposition_n be_v not_o personal_a but_o essential_a and_o âvery_n essential_a predicate_v belong_v to_o all_o and_o âvery_n one_o of_o the_o three_o person_n because_o they_o have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o divine_a essence_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v these_o three_o be_v âne_n 2._o observe_v how_o the_o 17._o of_o john_n and_o â_o verse_n be_v expound_v by_o john_n himself_o 17._o â_o john_n 5._o 20._o and_o we_o know_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v and_o have_v give_v we_o a_o understanding_n that_o we_o may_v know_v he_o that_o be_v true_a and_o we_o be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v true_a in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ._n this_o be_v the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n now_o add_v john_n 17._o this_o be_v life_n eternal_a to_o know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o put_v all_o together_o thus_o this_o be_v life_n eternal_a that_o they_o may_v know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v âsent_a the_o only_o true_a god_n for_o as_o john_n himself_o expound_v this_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n 1_o john_n 5._o 20._o 3_o observe_v that_o john_n himself_o expound_v this_o also_o of_o the_o 2._o holy_a ghost_n for_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v one_o only_a god_n 1_o joh._n 5._o 7._o these_o three_o be_v one_o and_o therefore_o iâ_n do_v not_o at_o all_o follow_v that_o the_o son_n and_o spirit_n be_v not_o the_o true_a god_n because_o the_o father_n be_v the_o only_a god_n for_o they_o be_v all_o three_o one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n who_o be_v the_o only_a god_n the_o only_a true_a god_n 4._o observe_v that_o i_o do_v not_o as_o some_o learned_a man_n do_v only_o affirm_v that_o the_o word_n only_a be_v put_v there_o to_o sancto_fw-la
5_o 26._o there_o be_v a_o subsist_v life_n give_v to_o the_o son_n by_o a_o eternal_a generation_n and_o the_o communicatione_n father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o and_o self-subsistence_n also_o and_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o be_v no_o dishonour_n to_o the_o son_n to_o be_v beget_v of_o the_o father_n and_o to_o receive_v subsist_v life_n from_o the_o father_n 21._o for_o the_o son_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o also_o 18._o and_o be_v god_n of_o himself_o 30._o quicken_v who_o he_o will_v by_o his_o divine_a power_n even_o as_o the_o father_n do_v for_o he_o have_v the_o very_a same_o power_n and_o will_n which_o the_o father_n have_v because_o they_o have_v both_o one_o and_o the_o same_o divine_a nature_n 34._o and_o therefore_o the_o jew_n do_v conclude_v aâight_n when_o they_o say_v that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n make_v himself_o equal_a with_o god_n by_o say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n joh_n 5._o 18._o it_o be_v no_o dishonour_n to_o jesus_n christ_n to_o bita_fw-la receive_v subsist_v life_n in_o such_o a_o glorious_a way_n from_o the_o âather_n as_o that_o he_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o father_n nay_o one_o with_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o one_o and_o the_o same_o worship_n with_o the_o father_n with_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a worship_n inward_a and_o outward_a worship_n the_o worship_n of_o our_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o our_o whole_a man_n for_o all_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o honour_v the_o son_n as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n joh._n 5._o 23._o and_o let_v all_o socinian_o take_v special_a notice_n of_o what_o follow_v he_o that_o honour_v not_o the_o son_n honour_v not_o the_o father_n which_o have_v send_v he_o joh._n 5._o 23._o âet_v they_o not_o then_o pretend_v that_o they_o dishonour_v the_o son_n by_o deny_v his_o godhead_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n for_o the_o father_n will_v maintain_v and_o vindicate_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o first-begotten_a and_o only_o beget_v son_n and_o let_v they_o diligent_o consider_v that_o text_n in_o the_o 2._o epist._n of_o john_n 9_o whosoever_o transgress_v and_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o god_n he_o who_o abide_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n he_o have_v both_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n it_o be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o great_a ruler_n jesus_n christ_n that_o he_o be_v beget_v from_o the_o day_n of_o eternity_n mic._n 5._o 2._o final_o sanctus_n it_o do_v much_o redound_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n that_o both_o do_v concur_v to_o give_v subsist_v life_n to_o the_o coequal_a spirit_n by_o eternal_a spiration_n the_o father_n and_o son_n do_v both_o breathe_v forth_o this_o glorious_a spirit_n the_o spirit_n of_o elohim_n of_o both_o person_n gen._n 1_o 2._o the_o spirit_n that_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n joh._n 15._o 26._o be_v send_v by_o christ_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v give_v by_o christ._n 22._o christ_n breathe_v upon_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o they_o to_o show_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v breathe_v forth_o by_o himself_o as_o well_o as_o from_o the_o father_n joh._n 20._o 22._o and_o he_o be_v often_o call_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v receive_v of_o that_o which_o be_v christ_n as_o well_o as_o the_o father_n joh._n 16._o 14_o 15._o and_o christ_n be_v glorify_v by_o the_o spirit_n joh._n 16._o 14._o as_o the_o father_n be_v glorify_v by_o christ._n for_o christ_n receive_v from_o the_o father_n &_o the_o spirit_n from_o christ_n what_o they_o both_o reveal_v to_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n nor_o be_v it_o any_o dishonour_n to_o the_o spirit_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n in_o such_o a_o glorious_a way_n as_o to_o be_v equal_a with_o they_o nay_o one_o with_o they_o 1_o joh._n 5._o 7._o for_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v oblige_v by_o the_o first_o sacrament_n of_o christianity_n to_o honour_v the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o their_o body_n and_o soul_n which_o be_v his_o 66._o holy_a temple_n as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n the_o spirit_n of_o âehovah_n be_v the_o god_n of_o israel_n 2_o sam_n 23._o 2_o 3._o possint_fw-la the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o he_o be_v one_o god_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n have_v a_o infinite_a essence_n which_o do_v exist_v of_o itself_o though_o as_o he_o be_v the_o three_o person_n he_o have_v not_o subsistence_n from_o himself_o but_o by_o emanation_n procession_n spiration_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o yet_o both_o concur_v to_o build_v a_o temple_n to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o he_o may_v be_v worship_v as_o god_n these_o three_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v take_v mutual_a delight_n content_n and_o satisfaction_n in_o one_o another_o the_o distinction_n between_o they_o be_v not_o modalis_fw-la absolute_a but_o relative_n only_o they_o do_v mutual_o subsist_v in_o one_o another_o and_o all_o of_o they_o subsist_v in_o the_o same_o glorious_a godhead_n which_o godhead_n dwell_v equal_o in_o its_o fullness_n in_o all_o three_o and_o be_v as_o true_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o it_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o this_o divine_a nature_n be_v infinite_a not_o contenta_fw-la include_v in_o or_o exclude_v from_o any_o place_n the_o divine_a 144._o work_n whereby_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o godhead_n be_v so_o much_o manifest_v unto_o ãâã_d be_v perform_v by_o the_o godhead_n subsist_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n for_o all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n upon_o or_o about_o the_o creature_n for_o their_o creation_n sustentation_n or_o regulation_n be_v inseparable_o unite_v as_o 8._o augustine_v often_o argue_v and_o the_o schoolman_n from_o he_o all_o thing_n be_v of_o the_o father_n suppositorum_fw-la by_o the_o son_n and_o through_o the_o spirit_n 1_o cor._n 8._o 6._o john_n 5._o 19_o john_n 1._o 3._o gen._n 1._o 2._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 11_o 13._o ephes._n 2._o 18._o so_o that_o by_o the_o majesty_n of_o all_o three_o shine_v in_o the_o word_n and_o the_o joint_a concurrence_n of_o all_o three_o in_o every_o work_n that_o be_v proper_o divine_a the_o godhead_n be_v make_v thrice_o 4._o illustrious_a throughout_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o the_o godhead_n remain_v single_o and_o singular_o one_o in_o all_o three_o subsistence_n final_o the_o ãâã_d natural_a and_o infinite_a perfection_n of_o the_o godhead_n require_v this_o wonderful_a communication_n of_o subsistence_n by_o the_o father_n as_o the_o first_o personal_a principle_n to_o the_o son_n and_o by_o the_o âather_n and_o the_o son_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o god_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o any_o other_o be_v or_o any_o other_o manner_n of_o be_v or_o subsist_v then_o what_o he_o have_v for_o he_o have_v the_o singularis_fw-la best_a be_v that_o be_v nay_o the_o best_a that_o can_v be_v because_o the_o be_v of_o god_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o be_v or_o subsist_v of_o the_o godhead_n in_o these_o three_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v infinite_o perfect_a and_o there_o can_v be_v no_o better_o be_v or_o manner_n of_o be_v or_o subsist_v then_o that_o which_o be_v perfect_a infinite_a and_o infinite_o perfect_a the_o father_n do_v not_o arbitrary_o beget_v his_o son_n nor_o do_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n arbitrary_o concur_v in_o breathe_v forth_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o the_o natural_a and_o infinite_a perfection_n of_o the_o godhead_n do_v require_v this_o wonderful_a communication_n of_o itself_o because_o such_o be_v the_o natural_a perfection_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o godhead_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v full_o communicate_v unless_o subsistence_n be_v communicate_v by_o the_o father_n to_o the_o son_n and_o by_o both_o to_o the_o spirit_n for_o their_o mutual_a eternal_a infinite_a satisfaction_n and_o delight_n and_o therefore_o the_o father_n do_v not_o beget_v his_o son_n nor_o do_v the_o father_n and_o son_n breath_n forth_o the_o spirit_n arbitrary_o but_o natural_o and_o necessary_o though_o voluntary_o for_o the_o eternal_a satisfaction_n of_o all_o three_o susistence_n that_o the_o whole_a godhead_n may_v be_v in_o every_o one_o of_o these_o three_o according_a to_o its_o infinite_a 4._o perfection_n and_o all_o three_o subsist_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o dwell_v in_o one_o another_o mutual_o possess_v love_n &_o glorify_v one_o another_o from_o everlasting_a to_o everlasting_a because_o all_o three_o be_v coessential_a coequal_a coeternal_a every_o one_o of_o the_o person_n the_o three_o as_o well_o as_o the_o first_o be_v god_n by_o est_fw-la nature_n gal_n
4._o 8._o and_o not_o by_o the_o mere_a favour_n of_o any_o one_o or_o more_o of_o the_o coessential_a person_n and_o therefore_o both_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n and_o breathe_v forth_o of_o the_o spirit_n must_v needs_o be_v est_fw-la eternal_a because_o both_o be_v natural_a for_o whatsoever_o be_v natural_a unto_o god_n must_v needs_o be_v eternal_a but_o because_o the_o father_n be_v the_o first_o reâeruntâr_fw-la personal_a principle_n of_o subsist_v life_n all_o be_v from_o he_o by_o the_o son_n 1_o cor._n 8._o 6._o and_o all_o be_v refer_v back_o again_o to_o he_o as_o the_o first_o personal_a principle_n even_o by_o the_o son_n john_n 5._o 19_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o father_n self_n subsistence_n his_o order_n of_o subsist_v and_o his_o communicate_v f_o subsistence_n to_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n though_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n also_o as_o have_v be_v show_v and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v most_o 2._o familiar_o give_v to_o the_o far_o both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a testament_n âhough_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v all_o equal_o god_n nay_o be_v unicissimum_fw-la one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n who_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n bless_v for_o ever_o we_o may_v then_o look_v upon_o the_o son_n admire_v and_o bless_v the_o father_n look_v upon_o the_o father_n and_o bless_v the_o son_n look_v upon_o father_n and_o son_n and_o bless_v the_o spirit_n look_v upon_o all_o three_o admire_v and_o bless_v adore_v and_o love_v colonius_n know_v believe_v and_o obey_v all_o three_o coequal_a person_n subsist_v in_o the_o same_o most_o single_a godhead_n and_o have_v access_n to_o the_o father_n through_o the_o son_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n with_o reverence_n and_o confidence_n zeal_n and_o love_n chap._n vi_o the_o divine_a subsistence_n be_v the_o most_o excellent_a subsistence_n that_o be_v or_o can_v be_v the_o word_n subsistence_n or_o person_n can_v be_v attribute_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n to_o god_n angel_n and_o men._n it_o be_v not_o my_o business_n at_o this_o time_n to_o make_v any_o metaphysical_a distinction_n between_o the_o person_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n bââ_n i_o desire_v to_o distinguish_v between_o create_a anâ_n uncreated_a person_n because_o uncreated_a person_n subsist_v in_o one_o single_a and_o infinite_a essence_n it_o may_v seem_v strange_a to_o some_o metaphysical_a wit_n that_o one_o person_n and_o much_o more_o thââ_n three_o distinct_a person_n shall_v subsist_v in_o oââ_n single_a and_o undivided_a essence_n but_o these_o discourse_a wit_n do_v not_o distinguish_v between_o create_a and_o uncreated_a person_n 2._o ãâã_d ground_n their_o faith_n on_o scholastical_a subtlety_n 3._o do_v not_o study_v the_o holy_a scripture_n wiââ_n humility_n and_o faith_n and_o beg_v a_o blessing_n oâ_n their_o study_n by_o fervent_a prayer_n 6._o for_o they_o may_v read_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o a_o divinâ_n person_n subsist_v in_o the_o divine_a nature_n phil_n 2._o 6._o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v subsist_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n because_o it_o present_o follow_v that_o therefore_o he_o think_v it_o no_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n for_o person_n that_o be_v coessential_a ãâã_d need_v be_v coequal_a christ_n and_o his_o father_n do_v both_o subsist_v in_o the_o same_o divine_a essence_n for_o christ_n be_v the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o father_n subsistence_n and_o he_o and_o his_o father_n be_v one_o one_o in_o essence_n john_n 10._o 30._o heb._n 1._o 3._o we_o find_v this_o interpretation_n be_v receive_v in_o the_o time_n of_o ãâã_d justinian_n the_o emperor_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o a_o interpretation_n late_o coin_v because_o it_o be_v say_v who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v demonstrate_v the_o hypostasis_fw-la or_o subsistence_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n and_o because_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n it_o signify_v that_o god_n the_o word_n that_o be_v god_n the_o son_n be_v unite_v with_o the_o nature_n not_o the_o subsistence_n or_o person_n of_o man_n he_o do_v subsist_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n but_o he_o do_v assume_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n and_o therefore_o christ_n have_v a_o divine_a subsistence_n no_o humane_a person_n no_o humane_a essentiâ_fw-la person_n subsist_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n nor_o do_v the_o person_n of_o a_o angel_n subsist_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o angel_n but_o the_o divine_a person_n of_o christ_n do_v subsist_v in_o his_o divine_a nature_n nay_o all_o the_o three_o person_n do_v subsist_v in_o the_o single_a and_o infinite_a nature_n of_o god_n from_o whence_o i_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o manifest_a but_o a_o infinite_a difference_n between_o create_a and_o uncreated_a subsistence_n or_o person_n and_o i_o speak_v of_o personalitate_fw-la person_n rather_o than_o personality_n because_o those_o abstract_n notion_n be_v not_o very_o well_o understand_v by_o the_o most_o discourse_v man_n for_o even_o they_o acknowledge_v that_o suppositorum_fw-la abstract_n be_v not_o well_o or_o not_o happy_o understand_v unless_o you_o descend_v to_o the_o consideration_n of_o their_o subject_n my_o purpose_n therefore_o upon_o most_o mature_a deliberation_n be_v 1._o to_o distinguish_v between_o create_a and_o uncreated_a person_n 2._o to_o treat_v of_o uncreated_a person_n rather_o than_o personality_n that_o be_v to_o treat_v of_o the_o three_o person_n not_o abstract_v from_o but_o subsist_v in_o the_o divine_a nature_n i_o will_v not_o speak_v simple_o of_o the_o son_n as_o a_o son_n in_o that_o abstract_n relation_n or_o of_o the_o son_n as_o a_o person_n or_o as_o the_o second_o person_n by_o abstract_v his_o personality_n from_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o which_o he_o subsist_v but_o i_o desire_v to_o speak_v of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o subsist_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n according_a to_o that_o expression_n of_o the_o apostle_n phil._n 2._o 6._o who_o subsist_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n for_o i_o be_o resolve_v to_o follow_v the_o scripture_n and_o i_o do_v not_o think_v it_o safe_a to_o abstract_n the_o incommunicable_a subsistence_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o which_o he_o subsist_v lest_o i_o fall_v into_o vain_a speculation_n as_o many_o learned_a man_n have_v do_v now_o if_o you_o take_v in_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o christ_n and_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n of_o all_o three_o person_n because_o all_o have_v the_o same_o divine_a nature_n there_o will_v be_v i_o say_v not_o only_o a_o manifest_a but_o a_o infinite_a difference_n between_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o person_n of_o the_o most_o glorious_a angel_n in_o heaven_n person_n they_o who_o have_v long_o study_v the_o most_o refine_a and_o curious_a part_n of_o metaphysic_n when_o they_o come_v to_o discourse_v of_o the_o distinction_n between_o a_o singular_a nature_n and_o a_o person_n be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o they_o do_v confine_v their_o speech_n to_o create_v nature_n and_o person_n because_o philosophiam_fw-la there_o be_v even_o almost_o nothing_o evident_a to_o they_o by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n concern_v the_o divine_a nature_n and_o uncreated_a person_n and_o therefore_o on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o well_o become_v i_o to_o confine_v my_o discourse_n to_o uncreated_a person_n because_o there_o be_v so_o vast_a a_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o the_o most_o excellent_a of_o all_o create_a person_n only_o something_o i_o must_v say_v of_o create_v person_n that_o by_o compare_v they_o with_o uncreated_a person_n i_o may_v demonstrate_v wherein_o they_o agree_v and_o wherein_o they_o differ_v boetius_fw-la relate_v that_o when_o there_o be_v a_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n read_v in_o which_o there_o be_v this_o orthodox_n position_n that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v a_o single_a person_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v two_o distinct_a nature_n in_o his_o single_a person_n boethius_n desire_v the_o learned_a man_n then_o present_a to_o assign_v the_o difference_n between_o a_o singular_a nature_n and_o a_o person_n and_o no_o man_n say_v he_o be_v able_a to_o tell_v i_o the_o difference_n or_o to_o declare_v what_o a_o person_n be_v but_o though_o boethius_n smile_v at_o the_o ignorance_n of_o other_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o wise_a 4._o enough_o to_o conceal_v his_o own_o for_o he_o define_v a_o person_n thus_o a_o person_n christi_fw-la be_v the_o undivided_a substance_n of_o a_o rational_a nature_n i_o be_o not_o at_o leisure_n to_o reckon_v up_o the_o defect_n of_o this_o imperfect_a definition_n vasquez_n be_v bold_a to_o say_v that_o aristotle_n know_v not_o how_o to_o distinguish_v a_o person_n from_o a_o singular_a nature_n and_o
do_v subsist_v and_o when_o we_o describe_v a_o divine_a person_n it_o be_v absurd_a to_o abstract_n the_o personality_n from_o the_o divine_a nature_n for_o how_o can_v you_o describe_v a_o divine_a person_n if_o you_o do_v abstract_a his_o personality_n from_o his_o divinity_n every_o single_a person_n be_v god_n nay_o every_o single_a person_n be_v the_o godhead_n the_o nature_n the_o essence_n of_o god_n consider_v with_o that_o subsistence_n relation_n and_o propriety_n which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o that_o person_n every_o single_a person_n be_v god_n of_o himself_o god_n deus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la per_fw-la alind_a deus_fw-la final_o âake_v all_o the_o three_o person_n together_o and_o âhey_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o one_o god_n and_o âhey_n be_v one_o god_n not_o absolute_o consider_v in_o his_o abstract_n nature_n scripture_n but_o relative_o consider_v with_o those_o peculiar_a relation_n ând_v incommunicable_a property_n whereby_o âhe_v three_o person_n be_v distinguish_v from_o one_o another_o when_o the_o considerata_fw-la name_n of_o god_n be_v âaken_v essential_o or_o common_o in_o scripture_n we_o say_v it_o do_v belong_v to_o all_o three_o person_n because_o it_o be_v speak_v without_o any_o determination_n or_o restriction_n to_o any_o one_o particular_a person_n as_o john_n 4._o 24._o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n mat._n 4._o 10._o mat._n 19_o 17._o there_o be_v none_o good_a but_o god_n these_o place_n must_v needs_o be_v interpret_v of_o all_o three_o person_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o christ_n do_v not_o by_o these_o speech_n exclude_v himself_o or_o the_o holy_a spirit_n from_o be_v good_a or_o be_v worship_v and_o when_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v take_v personal_o or_o singular_o in_o scripture_n we_o say_v it_o be_v understand_v of_o one_o person_n by_o a_o synecdoche_n because_o though_o the_o other_o person_n may_v be_v exclude_v from_o what_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o any_o one_o person_n because_o it_o be_v personal_a and_o therefore_o incommunicable_a yet_o they_o can_v be_v exclude_v from_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v essential_a because_o the_o same_o divine_a essence_n be_v common_a to_o all_o now_o the_o title_n of_o god_n be_v essential_a and_o what_o have_v be_v say_v of_o that_o be_v true_a of_o all_o essential_a title_n and_o attribute_n but_o personal_a relation_n property_n and_o action_n be_v all_o peculiar_a as_o we_o shall_v show_v at_o large_a in_o the_o next_o chapter_n all_o that_o i_o need_v infer_v from_o hence_o for_o the_o present_a be_v that_o when_o we_o describe_v the_o divine_a nature_n we_o shall_v not_o abstract_a it_o from_o the_o three_o person_n and_o when_o we_o describe_v a_o divine_a person_n abstract_v we_o shall_v not_o abstract_a he_o from_o the_o divine_a nature_n when_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o create_v person_n it_o do_v not_o abstract_a the_o personality_n from_o the_o singular_a substance_n or_o nature_n when_o the_o apostle_n say_v 2_o cor._n 1._o 11._o that_o thanks_o shall_v be_v give_v by_o many_o person_n he_o do_v not_o mean_v many_o personality_n but_o many_o humane_a singular_a substance_n thanks_o shall_v be_v give_v by_o a_o multitude_n of_o man_n particular_a man_n actiones_fw-la sunt_fw-la suppositorum_fw-la non_fw-la suppositalitatum_fw-la in_o like_a manner_n when_o we_o read_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o character_n of_o his_o father_n person_n person_n heb._n 1._o 3._o the_o word_n be_v subsistence_n the_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o the_o son_n be_v the_o character_n or_o express_v image_n of_o the_o fatherhood_n of_o the_o first_o person_n for_o christ_n do_v not_o beget_v a_o son_n as_o the_o father_n do_v but_o christ_n be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o subsistent_n that_o be_v of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o not_o of_o the_o mere_a subsistence_n or_o personality_n as_o it_o be_v abstract_v from_o the_o divine_a nature_n jesus_n christ_n have_v two_o nature_n in_o one_o single_a person_n divine_a now_o that_o person_n be_v a_o divine_a person_n the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o if_o i_o describe_v the_o person_n of_o jesus_n christ_n i_o may_v abstract_a his_o person_n from_o his_o humane_a nature_n and_o not_o mention_v that_o nature_n which_o do_v infinite_o differ_v from_o his_o divine_a person_n but_o i_o must_v not_o abstract_n the_o person_n of_o christ_n from_o his_o divine_a nature_n communis_fw-la because_o he_o have_v no_o other_o than_o a_o divine_a person_n which_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o and_o shall_v not_o be_v describe_v without_o consideration_n and_o mention_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n for_o this_o second_o person_n be_v not_o bare_o consider_v as_o a_o person_n or_o as_o a_o second_o person_n but_o as_o a_o divine_a person_n as_o the_o second_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n as_o the_o natural_a coessential_a coequal_a coeternal_a son_n of_o god_n as_o his_o own_o son_n his_o first_o beget_v son_n his_o only_o beget_v son_n rom._n 8._o 32._o joh._n 1._o 14._o and_o therefore_o he_o must_v be_v consider_v as_o god_n the_o true_a god_n god_n bless_v for_o ever_o joh._n 1._o 1._o 14._o 18._o rom._n 9_o 5._o 1_o joh._n 5._o 20._o and_o therefore_o he_o must_v be_v describe_v as_o god_n ãâã_d himself_o for_o the_o son_n be_v jehovah_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v and_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o father_n joh._n 4._o â_o jesus_n christ_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n with_o the_o father_n now_o papist_n and_o socinian_o wiââ_n both_o confess_v that_o the_o father_n be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d god_n of_o himself_o and_o therefore_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o son_n son_n be_v god_n of_o himself_o if_o the_o godhead_n of_o the_o son_n be_v beget_v and_o the_o godhead_n of_o the_o father_n unbegotten_a there_o will_v be_v two_o distinct_a godhead_n in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n the_o one_o beget_v and_o the_o other_o unbegotten_a take_v it_o thus_o theâ_n in_o brief_a the_o second_o person_n godhead_n of_o the_o godhead_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n subsist_v iâ_n the_o unbegotten_a nature_n of_o god_n because_o he_o be_v the_o natural_a and_o coessential_a son_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o therefore_o have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o unbegotten_a nature_n with_o the_o father_n the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o son_n be_v beget_v but_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o the_o son_n be_v unbegotten_a ghost_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o infinite_a spirit_n coessential_a with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o not_o a_o mere_a subsistence_n proceed_v from_o both_o and_o yet_o he_o be_v distinguish_v from_o both_o by_o his_o personal_a relation_n and_o incommunicable_a property_n these_o ground_n be_v lay_v for_o a_o foundation_n person_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o build_v on_o and_o infer_v 1._o that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o mere_a personality_n but_o divine_a person_n 2._o a_o divine_a person_n be_v not_o a_o quality_n or_o any_o other_o accident_n but_o a_o infinite_a substance_n subsist_v after_o the_o most_o perfect_a and_o glorious_a manner_n that_o be_v or_o can_v be_v 3._o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v infinite_a do_v contain_v all_o manner_n of_o perfection_n within_o itself_o both_o absolute_a and_o relative_n and_o therefore_o the_o relation_n which_o be_v between_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v natural_a perfect_a divine_a 4._o the_o divine_a nature_n can_v be_v separate_v from_o all_o or_o any_o one_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n 5._o these_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n one_o infinite_a spirit_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v coessential_a coequal_a coeternal_a 6._o these_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v distinguish_v as_o shall_v be_v show_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n but_o can_v be_v divide_v or_o separate_v either_o from_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o from_o one_o another_o because_o they_o do_v alâ_n three_o subsist_v in_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o in_o one_o another_o for_o they_o have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o single_a and_o infinite_a nature_n and_o be_v one_o infinite_a spirit_n the_o same_o omnipresent_v god_n 7._o the_o explain_v word_n essentiae_fw-la subsistence_n be_v a_o consecrate_a word_n which_o as_o we_o find_v upon_o record_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o that_o divine_a manner_n of_o be_v which_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n have_v in_o the_o godhead_n and_o in_o one_o another_o the_o heathen_a orator_n can_v say_v verbis_fw-la consecratis_fw-la utendum_fw-la he_o mean_v word_n that_o be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o use_n and_o approbation_n of_o classical_a author_n but_o i_o mean_v word_n consecrate_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o we_o render_v subsistence_n and_o by_o way_n of_o analogy_n person_n have_v many_o etc._n other_o signification_n but_o
when_o it_o be_v use_v on_o this_o occasion_n upon_o this_o subject_n we_o may_v after_o so_o many_o dispute_v about_o this_o argument_n easy_o understand_v the_o proper_a and_o consecrate_a importance_n of_o the_o word_n we_o may_v take_v warning_n by_o the_o mistake_v of_o other_o and_o avoid_v those_o rock_n on_o which_o other_o have_v suffer_v shipwreck_n some_o who_o understand_v that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v signify_v essence_n be_v offend_v with_o such_o as_o say_v there_o be_v three_o hypostasis_n in_o god_n because_o according_a to_o that_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v three_o hypostasis_n in_o god_n be_v to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v three_o essence_n in_o god_n and_o consequent_o that_o there_o be_v three_o go_n it_o be_v ready_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o subsistentem_fw-la word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v sometime_o signify_v the_o nature_n or_o essence_n of_o a_o thing_n not_o the_o generical_a or_o specifical_a nature_n in_o their_o latitude_n and_o abstract_n universality_n but_o the_o nature_n aristot._n true_o exist_v and_o subsist_v in_o the_o world_n this_o acception_n of_o the_o word_n may_v all_o thing_n due_o consider_v and_o sober_o expound_v be_v admit_v with_o some_o grain_n of_o allowance_n for_o the_o infinite_a difference_n which_o be_v between_o create_v and_o uncreated_a subsistent_n for_o if_o hypostasis_fw-la be_v describe_v in_o concreto_fw-la for_o which_o we_o have_v with_o invincible_a reason_n contend_v all_o along_o this_o chapter_n then_o ingenitae_fw-la hypostasis_fw-la do_v connote_v the_o divine_a nature_n and_o signify_v not_o a_o abstract_a subsistence_n but_o a_o complete_a subsistent_n when_o i_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o character_n of_o his_o father_n subsistence_n i_o do_v not_o as_o i_o have_v former_o show_v understand_v it_o thus_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o character_n of_o his_o father_n abstract_a personality_n but_o he_o be_v the_o character_n of_o god_n the_o father_n i_o take_v in_o the_o divine_a nature_n but_o you_o must_v then_o consider_v that_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o trinunity_n must_v be_v preserve_v in_o this_o acception_n for_o there_o be_v not_o a_o new_a nature_n in_o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o but_o the_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v connoted_a in_o these_o three_o hypostasâs_n be_v the_o very_a same_o there_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o mystery_n which_o dazzle_v the_o eye_n of_o carnal_a reason_n and_o therefore_o whatever_o we_o say_v on_o this_o argument_n must_v be_v take_v cum_fw-la granosalis_fw-la and_o expound_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d because_o of_o the_o infinite_a difference_n between_o a_o finite_a and_o infinite_a nature_n and_o between_o create_v and_o uncreated_a person_n as_o i_o shall_v god_n will_v show_v at_o large_a before_o i_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n three_o person_n may_v and_o do_v subsist_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a nature_n and_o therefore_o though_o eâery_o distinctivis_fw-la hypostasis_fw-la do_v connote_v the_o divine_a nature_n yet_o all_o â_o here_o connote_v one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a subsistentiâ_fw-la nature_n in_o which_o all_o three_o person_n do_v possunt_fw-la subsist_v to_o subsist_v be_v as_o aristotle_n the_o great_a interpreter_n expound_v it_o to_o have_v the_o most_o perfect_a manner_n of_o be_v by_o itself_o that_o a_o substance_n the_o best_a of_o being_n can_v attain_v to_o and_o it_o be_v very_o proper_a to_o say_v that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n have_v the_o most_o perfect_a manner_n of_o subsistence_n in_o the_o divine_a nature_n that_o be_v or_o can_v be_v the_o divine_a licet_fw-la nature_n consider_v with_o all_o absolute_a &_o relative_n perfection_n in_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v most_o true_o proper_o and_o perfect_o subsist_v for_o there_o be_v three_o illustrious_a subsistence_n in_o that_o one_o undivided_a infinite_a nature_n subsi_v and_o therefore_o the_o godhead_n thus_o consider_v do_v subsist_v categor_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d singular_a substance_n have_v the_o most_o perfect_a subsistence_n a_o spirit_n be_v the_o most_o perfect_a substance_n god_n be_v the_o most_o single_a and_o singular_a substance_n and_o he_o be_v the_o only_a infinite_a spirit_n the_o best_a of_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o he_o must_v needs_o have_v the_o most_o perfect_a subsistence_n every_o single_a person_n be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o therefore_o i_o will_v be_v bold_a to_o infer_v that_o these_o three_o person_n only_o do_v perfect_o subsist_v by_o themselves_o though_o in_o three_o one_o another_o for_o they_o have_v one_o independent_a spiritual_a infinite_a nature_n which_o be_v of_o itself_o and_o be_v complete_a in_o itself_o because_o infinite_a in_o perfection_n and_o therefore_o contain_v all_o absolute_a and_o relative_n perfection_n in_o itself_o but_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o relative_n perfection_n we_o speak_v of_o syn._n three_o in_o one_o because_o the_o relative_n property_n be_v distinctive_a and_o when_o we_o treat_v of_o the_o absolute_a perfection_n we_o speak_v of_o one_o in_o three_o one_o essence_n in_o three_o person_n who_o do_v all_o three_o subsist_v with_o their_o relative_n and_o incommunicable_a property_n in_o that_o most_o perfect_a and_o single_a essence_n this_o be_v that_o divine_a trinunity_n which_o contain_v all_o absolute_a and_o relative_n perfection_n and_o therefore_o have_v the_o most_o perfect_a and_o excellent_a subsistence_n that_o be_v or_o can_v be_v final_o though_o these_o three_o person_n do_v mutual_o subsist_v in_o one_o another_o yet_o they_o be_v say_v to_o subsist_v by_o themselves_o 1._o because_o these_o person_n do_v not_o subsist_v in_o one_o another_o another_o as_o accident_n do_v exist_v in_o a_o subject_a for_o accident_n exist_v in_o another_o because_o of_o their_o imperfection_n but_o these_o subsist_v in_o one_o another_o because_o of_o their_o perfection_n because_o they_o have_v the_o same_o single_a infinite_a nature_n and_o be_v one_o infinite_a and_o omnipresent_v spirit_n 2._o they_o subsist_v mutual_o in_o one_o another_o the_o father_n subsist_v in_o the_o son_n joh._n 14._o 10_o 11._o as_o well_o as_o the_o son_n in_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o this_o subsist_v in_o one_o another_o do_v not_o argue_v any_o imperfection_n but_o do_v demonstrate_v the_o infinite_a perfection_n of_o all_o three_o subsistent_n but_o there_o be_v no_o mutual_a inexistence_n of_o a_o accident_n in_o a_o subject_n and_o a_o subject_n in_o that_o accident_n or_o any_o other_o 3._o these_o three_o subsistent_n have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o spiritual_a 1._o independent_a infinite_a nature_n which_o be_v complete_a of_o itself_o and_o in_o itself_o and_o the_o whole_a creation_n do_v not_o afford_v one_o example_n to_o illustrate_v much_o less_o to_o parallel_v these_o three_o illustrious_a subsistence_n in_o one_o undivided_a nature_n and_o it_o be_v impossible_a it_o shall_v for_o this_o one_o undivided_a nature_n in_o which_o these_o three_o glorious_a person_n do_v subsist_v be_v a_o infinite_a nature_n and_o there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o infinite_a and_o therefore_o the_o socinian_o seem_v to_o have_v lose_v what_o they_o do_v so_o much_o idolise_v their_o reason_n when_o they_o desire_v we_o to_o illustrate_v this_o mystery_n by_o a_o example_n 4._o these_o three_o subsistent_n be_v coequal_a because_o coessential_a the_o father_n upon_o some_o of_o these_o consideration_n do_v agree_v to_o use_v the_o phrase_n of_o three_o hypostasis_n and_o one_o essence_n though_o the_o word_n hypostasis_fw-la be_v not_o so_o plain_a and_o familiar_a at_o first_o especial_o to_o latin_a ear_n and_o therefore_o sit_fw-la hierome_n complain_v that_o some_o be_v too_o rigorous_a in_o impose_v that_o word_n without_o expound_v of_o it_o to_o such_o who_o judgement_n be_v orthodox_n though_o their_o skill_n but_o small_a in_o the_o greek_a to_o conclude_v my_o discourse_n upon_o this_o word_n subsistence_n be_v please_v to_o consider_v that_o we_o read_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n we_o read_v of_o the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o father_n and_o we_o read_v that_o these_o three_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v one_o have_v these_o two_o word_n nature_n &_o subsistence_n in_o scripture_n we_o be_v prompt_v by_o the_o spirit_n speak_v in_o the_o word_n to_o explain_v this_o mystery_n thus_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v three_o in_o subsistence_n but_o one_o in_o nature_n no_o mystery_n can_v be_v explain_v with_o less_o violence_n and_o more_o sobriety_n for_o we_o be_v precise_a in_o keep_v to_o the_o very_a word_n of_o scripture_n in_o explain_v this_o grand_a mystery_n to_o the_o plain_a of_o man_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v sentence_v of_o old_a that_o do_v not_o believe_v this_o plain_a truth_n ix_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o be_v offend_v with_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n person_n person_n when_o we_o treat_v of_o this_o argument_n if_o
essence_n and_o his_o essence_n be_v single_a uncompounded_a undivided_a indivisible_a it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o god_n be_v god_n and_o god_n be_v as_o have_v be_v often_o show_v one_o single_a infinite_a perfection_n this_o be_v our_o first_o principle_n and_o last_o conclusion_n into_o which_o all_o our_o debate_n and_o by_o which_o all_o our_o doubt_n about_o this_o argument_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v resolve_v x._o the_o distinction_n between_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o person_n may_v be_v consider_v person_n 1._o in_o respect_n of_o predication_n the_o divine_a essence_n be_v predicate_v of_o every_o person_n because_o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o subsistence_n be_v god_n nay_o be_v the_o divine_a nature_n consider_v with_o this_o or_o that_o personal_a propriety_n and_o relation_n respective_o but_o one_o person_n be_v not_o predicate_v of_o another_o the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o son_n nor_o be_v the_o son_n the_o father_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2._o in_o respect_n of_o communication_n the_o divine_a nature_n be_v not_o only_o communicable_a but_o communicate_v to_o all_o three_o person_n but_o it_o be_v of_o the_o formal_a reason_n of_o a_o person_n to_o be_v incommunicable_a 3._o in_o respect_n of_o relation_n the_o divine_a nature_n do_v indeed_o eminent_o contain_v all_o absolute_a and_o relative_a perfection_n but_o the_o formal_a magnitudinis_fw-la relation_n whereby_o the_o person_n be_v not_o only_o distinguish_v from_o but_o oppose_v to_o one_o another_o can_v be_v essential_a under_o that_o consideration_n because_o they_o be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o several_a person_n and_o not_o common_a to_o all_o three_o person_n as_o the_o essence_n and_o nature_n be_v peculiar_a and_o distinctive_a relation_n be_v not_o essential_a because_o the_o person_n who_o be_v relative_o distinguish_v be_v not_o essential_o distinguish_v the_o divine_a nature_n of_o the_o father_n be_v distinguerentur_fw-la not_o his_o fatherhood_n for_o if_o it_o be_v than_o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o person_n will_v be_v god_n the_o father_n all_o three_o person_n will_v be_v one_o person_n which_o be_v a_o manifest_a contradiction_n 4._o in_o respect_n of_o generation_n and_o procession_n the_o divine_a essence_n do_v not_o beget_v nor_o be_v it_o be_v get_v it_o do_v not_o proceed_v and_o yet_o the_o father_n do_v beget_v the_o son_n be_v beget_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v proceed_v the_o person_n of_o christ_n be_v beget_v but_o his_o divine_a nature_n unbegotten_a 5_o in_o respect_n of_o number_n the_o person_n be_v three_o the_o divine_a nature_n most_o simple_o single_a and_o singular_o one_o 6._o in_o respect_n of_o order_n there_o be_v a_o order_n to_o be_v observe_v among_o the_o divine_a person_n the_o father_n be_v the_o first_o personal_a principle_n the_o son_n the_o second_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v breathe_v forth_o by_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v the_o three_o the_o scripture_n say_v there_o be_v three_o and_o do_v common_o reckon_v they_o in_o that_o order_n and_o we_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o reckon_v the_o holy_a ghost_n before_o the_o son_n because_o he_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n but_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v a_o single_a unity_n and_o the_o first_o unity_n be_v as_o uncapable_a of_o order_n as_o it_o be_v of_o number_n xi_o notwithstanding_o all_o these_o and_o some_o other_o distinct_a consideration_n i_o shall_v be_v bold_a to_o make_v this_o peremptory_a determination_n the_o three_o divine_a subsistence_n be_v not_o real_o distinguish_v from_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o essence_n the_o scripture_n say_v christ_n and_o his_o father_n be_v 30._o one_o joh._n 10._o 30._o and_o that_o all_o three_o be_v one_o 1._o john_n 5._o 7._o essential_o one_o and_o therefore_o real_o one_o i_o have_v say_v enough_o above_o to_o prove_v all_o three_o person_n to_o be_v essential_o one_o the_o three_o person_n be_v one_o god_n subsist_v with_o all_o possible_a perfection_n relative_n as_o well_o absolute_a in_o one_o pure_a act_n ex_fw-la parte_fw-la rei_fw-la the_o three_o divine_a person_n do_v not_o differ_v from_o the_o divine_a nature_n as_o a_o humane_a person_n do_v from_o the_o humane_a nature_n singular_o consider_v for_o a_o singular_a humane_a nature_n may_v be_v separate_v from_o a_o humane_a person_n as_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o incarnation_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n but_o the_o divine_a nature_n can_v subsist_v in_o alieno_fw-la supposito_fw-la the_o nature_n of_o god_n can_v subsist_v in_o any_o other_o or_o any_o few_o than_o these_o three_o person_n who_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o divine_a nature_n do_v not_o differ_v real_o from_o the_o person_n tanquam_fw-la res_fw-la à _fw-la re_fw-la as_o we_o say_v nor_o tanquam_fw-la res_fw-la à _fw-la modo_fw-la separabili_fw-la they_o do_v not_o differ_v real_o either_o way_n nor_o do_v the_o person_n differ_v real_o that_o be_v realiter_fw-la separabiliter_fw-la from_o one_o another_o as_o shall_v be_v prove_v when_o we_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n in_o the_o next_o chapter_n xii_o the_o distinction_n between_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o three_o divine_a subsistence_n be_v not_o a_o groundless_a conceit_n or_o a_o mere_a fiction_n of_o reason_n because_o it_o be_v ground_v on_o the_o 10._o word_n of_o god_n for_o our_o apprehension_n of_o god_n must_v be_v agreeable_a to_o that_o divine_a revelation_n which_o god_n have_v vouchsafe_v we_o of_o himself_o in_o scripture_n now_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a and_o evident_a by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v in_o this_o whole_a discourse_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v we_o to_o conceive_v distinct_o of_o some_o thing_n in_o god_n which_o be_v not_o real_o distinguish_v in_o he_o and_o therefore_o mr._n fry_n may_v do_v well_o to_o consider_v and_o retract_v that_o rash_a censure_n which_o he_o pass_v upon_o this_o doctrine_n of_o god_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o three_o distinct_a person_n or_o subsistence_n in_o the_o godhead_n be_v a_o chaffy_a gross_a carnal_a and_o absurd_a opinion_n in_o the_o title_n and_o 22._o page_n of_o his_o blasphemous_a book_n for_o this_o distinction_n be_v not_o only_o ground_v on_o a_o ingenita_fw-la phrase_n of_o scripture_n but_o be_v eternal_a xiii_o the_o distinction_n between_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o person_n be_v a_o eminent_a distinction_n i_o have_v tell_v you_o above_o what_o we_o mean_v by_o that_o expression_n the_o person_n be_v the_o essence_n of_o god_n and_o not_o any_o thing_n separate_v or_o divide_v from_o it_o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o person_n be_v a_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n nay_o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o person_n be_v the_o godhead_n consider_v with_o some_o particular_a property_n and_o relation_n and_o the_o godhead_n be_v absolute_o single_a we_o must_v conclude_v that_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o a_o divine_a person_n be_v the_o same_o essential_a real_a thing_n though_o they_o be_v eminent_o distinguish_v by_o sundry_a consideration_n as_o have_v be_v show_v but_o it_o be_v object_v that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o person_n be_v a_o substance_n objection_n and_o if_o there_o be_v three_o substance_n subsist_v in_o the_o godhead_n under_o sundry_a formal_a consideration_n than_o there_o will_v be_v three_o divine_a substance_n three_o substantial_a relation_n and_o property_n and_o therefore_o the_o godhead_n will_v be_v compound_v by_o these_o three_o substance_n substantial_a property_n and_o relation_n or_o else_o there_o will_v be_v three_o substantial_a and_o formal_a go_n to_o this_o grand_a objection_n i_o make_v these_o few_o return_n by_o way_n of_o answer_n 1._o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o person_n be_v a_o substance_n a_o divine_a substance_n answer_n but_o they_o be_v the_o same_o divine_a substance_n because_o they_o be_v the_o same_o god_n these_o three_o be_v one_o they_o be_v unum_fw-la one_o divine_a substance_n one_o god_n they_o be_v all_o three_o divine_a person_n but_o they_o be_v coessential_a person_n and_o ãâã_d inessentiall_a person_n of_o the_o same_o godhead_n ii_o the_o peculiar_a relation_n do_v distinguish_v but_o they_o do_v not_o compound_v compound_v for_o they_o do_v not_o supper_n add_v any_o new_a entity_n much_o less_o any_o new_a godhead_n because_o all_o these_o relation_n be_v natural_a eternal_a and_o therefore_o they_o be_v god_n absolute_a and_o relative_n perfection_n in_o god_n be_v but_o one_o single_a perfection_n 1._o the_o part_n or_o extreme_n wherewith_o any_o thing_n be_v compound_v must_v be_v real_o requisite_n or_o at_o least_o modally_n and_o separable_o distinct_a for_o all_o create_a nature_n and_o person_n be_v compound_v be_v not_o only_a modally_n but_o separable_o distinct_a 2._o the_o part_n compound_v must_v be_v unite_v by_o some_o ergo_fw-la efficient_a cause_n and_o one_o of_o the_o part_n must_v be_v
a_o mere_a power_n or_o passive_a potentiality_n that_o be_v capable_a of_o far_a perfection_n and_o the_o other_o a_o act_n to_o make_v that_o power_n informantes_fw-la perfect_a and_o complete_a 3._o there_o must_v be_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o union_n and_o perfection_n some_o dependence_n multiplicity_n and_o change_n now_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n in_o which_o the_o person_n subsist_v be_v not_o capable_a of_o these_o imperfection_n for_o 1._o there_o be_v no_o compound_v part_n in_o god_n 2._o the_o person_n be_v not_o make_v one_o person_n by_o their_o inessentiali_fw-la subsistence_n but_o remain_v three_o distinct_a person_n 3._o the_o person_n be_v not_o separable_o distinct_a from_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o from_o one_o another_o 4._o the_o person_n do_v not_o relativo_fw-la perfect_v the_o divine_a nature_n for_o it_o be_v infinite_o perfect_a of_o itself_o and_o the_o three_o person_n be_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o divine_a essence_n essential_o the_o same_o god_n and_o real_o one_o as_o have_v be_v lay_v the_o divine_a nature_n be_v not_o like_o a_o create_a nature_n which_o be_v imperfectae_fw-la actualitatis_fw-la as_o we_o say_v so_o imperfect_o actuate_v as_o that_o it_o be_v capable_a of_o far_a perfection_n for_o the_o divine_a nature_n have_v no_o weak_a imperfect_a defective_a passive_a potentiality_n in_o it_o and_o therefore_o can_v be_v contract_v determine_v actuate_v by_o any_o personal_a property_n or_o relation_n if_o god_n be_v essential_o consider_v he_o have_v a_o singular_a existence_n of_o himself_o by_o his_o own_o essence_n and_o have_v most_o perfect_a unity_n and_o quidditative_a or_o essential_a actuality_n because_o his_o essence_n be_v the_o most_o perfect_a essence_n that_o be_v or_o can_v be_v if_o god_n be_v persosonal_o consider_v he_o have_v the_o most_o perfect_a personality_n that_o be_v or_o can_v be_v and_o every_o person_n have_v a_o perfect_a proper_a and_o peculiar_a subsistence_n which_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o any_o far_a perfection_n in_o esse_fw-la personali_fw-la every_o person_n be_v complete_a in_o esse_fw-la quidditativo_fw-la per_fw-la essentiam_fw-la in_fw-la esse_fw-la personali_fw-la per_fw-la propriam_fw-la subsistentiam_fw-la i_o need_v say_v no_o more_o on_o that_o argument_n because_o i_o have_v upon_o several_a occasion_n say_v so_o much_o already_o iii_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n be_v not_o multiply_v by_o sundry_a consideration_n of_o the_o same_o essence_n iv._o the_o three_o formal_a consideration_n be_v not_o tertio_fw-la essential_a but_o personal_a consideration_n and_o we_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v three_o formal_a person_n in_o and_o of_o the_o godhead_n but_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v from_o thence_o that_o there_o be_v three_o god_n for_o these_o three_o person_n be_v one_o god_n v._o a._n divine_a person_n may_v be_v present_v to_o our_o most_o serious_a thought_n under_o a_o threefold_a consideration_n as_o learned_a alteram_fw-la junius_n observe_v 1._o the_o first_o consideration_n of_o a_o person_n be_v common_a or_o essential_a because_o the_o same_o divine_a essence_n be_v common_a to_o all_o three_o person_n when_o a_o person_n then_o be_v consider_v as_o god_n we_o call_v this_o a_o essential_a or_o common_a consideration_n because_o the_o person_n be_v personalium_fw-la no_o way_n distinguish_v under_o this_o first_o consideration_n but_o be_v one_o thing_n the_o choice_a and_o chief_a of_o thing_n and_o be_v one_o with_o the_o most_o single_a and_o singular_a kind_n of_o unity_n father_n son_n and_o spirit_n be_v one_o jehovah_n one_o god_n and_o the_o same_o god_n 2._o the_o second_o consideration_n be_v personal_a and_o yet_o alium_fw-la absolute_a whereby_o the_o person_n be_v consider_v as_o subsist_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n this_o consideration_n be_v more_o singular_a because_o every_o person_n have_v its_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a subsistence_n for_o the_o father_n do_v subsist_v of_o himself_o but_o the_o son_n have_v subsistence_n from_o his_o father_n now_o the_o self-subsistence_n of_o the_o father_n be_v proper_a peculiar_a personal_a that_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o his_o person_n and_o yet_o this_o self-subsistence_n be_v absosolute_a for_o his_o self-subsistence_n be_v not_o his_o fatherhood_n and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v esteem_v relative_n but_o though_o this_o consideration_n be_v more_o singular_a because_o every_o person_n have_v his_o peculiar_a subsistence_n yet_o herein_o all_o three_o person_n agree_v that_o they_o do_v all_o three_o subsist_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o same_o godhead_n though_o every_o person_n have_v his_o proper_a subsistence_n &_o his_o peculiar_a way_n of_o subsist_v here_o be_v indeed_o three_o subsistence_n under_o this_o consideration_n and_o yet_o but_o one_o divine_a substance_n essence_n nature_n godhead_n because_o all_o three_o do_v subsist_v in_o the_o discernuntur_fw-la unity_n of_o the_o same_o godhead_n for_o we_o must_v still_o keep_v our_o eye_n fix_v upon_o that_o text_n these_o three_o be_v one_o 3._o the_o three_o consideration_n be_v relative_n in_o the_o order_n of_o one_o person_n to_o and_o distinction_n of_o one_o person_n from_o another_o propriae_fw-la this_o distinction_n of_o person_n be_v to_o be_v handle_v at_o large_a in_o the_o next_o chapter_n our_o point_n in_o question_n here_o in_o this_o chapter_n do_v not_o concern_v the_o distinction_n of_o one_o person_n from_o another_o but_o the_o distinction_n of_o all_o three_o person_n from_o the_o divine_a nature_n now_o they_o who_o speak_v most_o large_o of_o the_o distinction_n between_o the_o person_n and_o say_v it_o be_v in_o some_o sense_n a_o voetius_fw-la real_a distinction_n do_v yet_o confess_v that_o the_o real_a distinction_n which_o they_o treat_v of_o be_v not_o x._o essential_a and_o therefore_o still_o here_o be_v a_o essential_a union_n of_o the_o three_o person_n under_o all_o these_o three_o consideration_n we_o do_v still_o make_v much_o of_o that_o text_n and_o hold_v it_o fast_o for_o our_o direction_n and_o support_n 1_o john_n 5._o 7._o vi_o this_o argument_n will_v be_v best_a answer_v by_o show_v the_o vast_a difference_n between_o create_a and_o uncreated_a person_n and_o i_o have_v with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o patience_n wade_v through_o all_o these_o perplex_a dispute_n that_o i_o may_v make_v way_n for_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o grand_a mystery_n and_o glad_a i_o be_o that_o i_o be_o now_o get_v within_o sight_n of_o it_o though_o i_o have_v have_v as_o hard_a a_o passage_n as_o hannibal_n have_v over_o or_o through_o the_o alps_n and_o yet_o i_o have_v make_v my_o way_n without_o fire_n or_o vinegar_n ii_o concern_v the_o difference_n between_o create_a and_o uncreated_a person_n person_n we_o may_v observe_v that_o 1._o all_o create_v person_n have_v a_o finite_a and_o dependent_a nature_n 2._o they_o have_v a_o compound_v nature_n 3._o they_o have_v a_o different_a nature_n person_n 4._o they_o have_v a_o different_a understanding_n will_n power_n 5._o they_o have_v a_o different_a place_n and_o presence_n 6._o they_o have_v different_a accident_n and_o be_v distinguish_v by_o a_o heap_n of_o accident_n 7._o humane_a person_n with_o who_o we_o be_v best_a acquaint_v may_v differ_v in_o time_n also_o one_o humane_a person_n may_v subsist_v a_o long_a time_n after_o another_o be_v dissolve_v have_v lay_v down_o these_o position_n let_v we_o now_o make_v the_o comparison_n and_o observe_v the_o difference_n between_o create_a and_o uncreated_a person_n 1._o all_o create_v person_n have_v a_o finite_a and_o dependent_a nature_n person_n but_o the_o nature_n of_o all_o uncreated_a person_n be_v independent_a and_o infinite_a this_o one_o difference_n be_v a_o infinite_a difference_n infinite_a and_o sure_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o difference_n that_o will_v suffice_v to_o discover_v and_o overthrow_v all_o the_o argument_n of_o socinian_o and_o familist_n i_o do_v often_o admire_v that_o the_o acute_a socinian_o who_o pretend_v to_o be_v whole_o rule_v by_o reason_n shall_v have_v no_o more_o reason_n in_o they_o then_o to_o argue_v after_o this_o absurd_a manner_n three_o humane_a person_n be_v thus_o and_o thus_o distinguish_v ergo_fw-la if_o there_o be_v three_o divine_a person_n they_o must_v be_v thus_o and_o thus_o distinguish_v also_o even_o just_a as_o humane_a person_n be_v be_v not_o this_o a_o gross_a fallacy_n 51._o because_o of_o the_o imparity_n and_o infinite_a redigere_fw-la inaequality_n if_o the_o divine_a person_n must_v be_v call_v into_o question_n let_v they_o be_v try_v by_o their_o peer_n they_o say_v they_o can_v comprehend_v this_o mystery_n i_o say_v the_o reason_n be_v because_o it_o be_v a_o mystery_n and_o if_o they_o can_v comprehend_v it_o they_o may_v the_o better_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v incomprehensible_a the_o single_a nature_n of_o these_o three_o person_n be_v infinite_a and_o if_o man_n wonder_v that_o they_o can_v comprehend_v what_o be_v infinite_a it_o be_v because_o
they_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o they_o themselves_o be_v finite_a 2._o the_o nature_n of_o these_o three_o glorious_a subsistence_n be_v independent_a the_o nature_n of_o all_o create_a subsistence_n be_v dependent_a sustentante_fw-la and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o a_o dependent_a nature_n do_v subsist_v in_o its_o proper_a person_n and_o depend_v upon_o its_o proper_a person_n for_o sustentation_n but_o the_o divine_a nature_n do_v not_o depend_v upon_o the_o three_o subsistence_n for_o its_o sustentation_n or_o subsistence_n but_o all_o three_o person_n do_v subsist_v in_o this_o independent_a and_o infinite_a nature_n philip._n 2._o 6._o subsist_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n so_o the_o scripture_n express_v it_o and_o we_o must_v apprehend_v and_o believe_v these_o holy_a mystery_n according_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n because_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n and_o god_n be_v the_o only_a all-sufficient_a witness_n concern_v his_o own_o essence_n and_o subsistence_n concern_v himself_o and_o therefore_o we_o must_v not_o think_v or_o speak_v otherwise_o of_o god_n then_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n in_o which_o god_n have_v sufficient_o and_o gracious_o reveal_v himself_o john_n 1._o 18._o matth._n 16._o 17._o matth._n 11._o 26_o 27._o the_o scripture_n direct_v we_o how_o to_o distinguish_v uncreated_a person_n from_o create_a person_n our_o finite_a and_o dependent_a nature_n do_v subsist_v in_o a_o create_a person_n but_o uncreated_a person_n do_v subsist_v in_o a_o infinite_a and_o independent_a nature_n there_o be_v a_o manifest_a difference_n our_o nature_n indeed_o do_v subsist_v in_o the_o divine_a and_o uncreated_a person_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o that_o be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o common_a course_n of_o nature_n there_o be_v a_o peculiar_a reason_n and_o another_o mystery_n in_o that_o wonderful_a subsistence_n and_o yet_o even_o in_o that_o wonderful_a mystery_n our_o dependent_a nature_n do_v subsist_v in_o a_o person_n cajetanus_n which_o note_v its_o dependence_n and_o our_o nature_n be_v more_o satisfy_v and_o quiet_v by_o subsistence_n in_o a_o divine_a then_o in_o a_o humane_a person_n because_o it_o have_v a_o more_o glorious_a sustentation_n and_o be_v more_o powerful_o uphold_v by_o that_o divine_a and_o uncreated_a person_n the_o divine_a person_n of_o christ_n do_v subsist_v in_o his_o divine_a nature_n and_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n do_v subsist_v in_o his_o divine_a and_o only_a person_n iii_o all_o create_a person_n have_v a_o compound_v and_o divisible_a nature_n difference_n but_o uncreated_a person_n have_v a_o single_a undivided_a and_o indivisible_a nature_n the_o socinian_o arminian_n and_o vorstian_o of_o this_o age_n do_v not_o love_v to_o hear_v any_o discourse_n of_o the_o single_a nature_n of_o god_n in_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n this_o doctrine_n they_o say_v be_v philosophical_a scholastical_a metaphysical_a and_o therefore_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o concern_v faith_n piety_n or_o manner_n in_o it_o but_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a and_o evident_a that_o all_o the_o glorious_a attribute_n of_o god_n be_v unite_v by_o a_o eternal_a bond_n which_o can_v be_v dissolve_v and_o we_o have_v invincible_o prove_v that_o they_o do_v all_o signify_v but_o one_o single_a and_o infinite_a perfection_n if_o you_o take_v away_o the_o singleness_n of_o god_n be_v you_o take_v away_o his_o incommunicable_a unchangeable_a incomprehensible_a independent_a and_o infinite_a perfection_n this_o point_n be_v excellent_o discuss_v and_o open_v by_o 4._o damaseene_a composition_n say_v he_o do_v beget_v strife_n strife_n may_v well_o cause_v a_o separation_n and_o separation_n dissolution_n which_o all_o who_o know_v any_o thing_n of_o god_n will_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o godhead_n the_o learned_a passim_fw-la doctor_n of_o old_a do_v consider_v that_o god_n be_v a_o most_o pure_a and_o perfect_a act_n the_o first_o and_o independent_a be_v that_o he_o be_v what_o he_o be_v by_o his_o own_o essence_n and_o not_o by_o participation_n but_o dodrac_n vorstius_n be_v bold_a to_o publish_v his_o dream_n contrary_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o unanimous_a judgement_n of_o the_o reverend_a doctor_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o socinian_o in_o their_o 1._o catechism_n the_o 42._o arminian_n in_o their_o confession_n and_o apology_n be_v exceed_o too_o blame_n in_o this_o point_n the_o socinian_o do_v expunge_v the_o single_a and_o infinite_a perfection_n of_o god_n 84._o spiritual_a nature_n out_o of_o their_o catechism_n that_o they_o may_v more_o secure_o deny_v the_o coessential_a trinunity_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o therefore_o i_o do_v insist_v upon_o this_o difference_n between_o create_a and_o uncreated_a person_n because_o if_o the_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o single_a and_o infinite_a perfection_n of_o god_n spiritual_a nature_n be_v overthrow_v all_o the_o vorstium_fw-la fundamental_o of_o the_o christian_a religion_n will_v be_v overturn_v voet._n god_n be_v jehovah_n he_o be_v what_o he_o be_v by_o his_o own_o essence_n he_o can_v neither_o cease_v to_o be_v or_o to_o be_v what_o he_o be_v for_o he_o can_v be_v any_o other_o thing_n or_o any_o otherwise_o then_o now_o he_o be_v and_o ever_o be_v exod._n 3._o 14_o 15._o revel_v 1._o 8._o james._n 1._o 17._o psal._n 10._o 2._o 27._o god_n be_v call_v light_n and_o love_n &_o life_n in_o scripture_n to_o note_v the_o singleness_n of_o his_o be_v because_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o he_o be_v himself_o and_o he_o himself_o be_v one_o single_a infinite_a perfection_n he_o be_v light_v itself_o and_o in_o he_o be_v no_o darkness_n at_o all_o 1_o john_n 1._o 5._o god_n have_v not_o such_o a_o imperfect_a singleness_n of_o be_v as_o we_o say_v be_v in_o the_o saâpl_n first_o matter_n of_o last_o difference_n and_o the_o like_a nor_o such_o a_o singleness_n as_o be_v in_o angel_n or_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n for_o they_o be_v but_o a_o comparative_a singleness_n there_o be_v some_o kind_n of_o composition_n even_o in_o the_o most_o glorious_a angel_n god_n be_v not_o compound_v of_o a_o nature_n 127._o atrribute_n and_o relation_n as_o have_v be_v show_v nor_o be_v any_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n compound_v nor_o can_v the_o godhead_n be_v say_v to_o be_v compound_v of_o three_o person_n for_o though_o the_o person_n be_v distinguish_v they_o do_v not_o compound_v nor_o can_v they_o be_v compound_v distinction_n connote_v perfection_n because_o it_o be_v opposite_a to_o confusion_n but_o composition_n denote_v multiplicity_n and_o imperfection_n we_o must_v then_o consider_v that_o 1._o the_o essence_n of_o god_n be_v most_o complectitur_fw-la perfect_a and_o therefore_o nothing_o can_v be_v add_v to_o it_o to_o make_v it_o more_o perfect_a because_o it_o be_v infinite_o perfect_a 2._o whatsoever_o be_v compound_v may_v be_v dissolve_v into_o the_o part_n whereof_o it_o be_v compound_v the_o godhead_n can_v be_v dissolve_v because_o it_o can_v be_v change_v 3._o whatsoever_o be_v compound_v must_v needs_o be_v dependent_a both_o in_o be_v and_o in_o work_v but_o god_n be_v superieri_fw-la independent_a ergo._fw-la 4._o the_o part_n compound_v be_v potest_fw-la before_o the_o whole_a that_o be_v compound_v but_o god_n be_v the_o former_a of_o all_o thing_n and_o therefore_o nothing_o can_v be_v before_o god_n the_o divine_a essence_n can_v be_v late_a than_o itself_o or_o late_a than_o any_o thing_n else_o because_o it_o be_v the_o first_o and_o eternal_a be_v now_o if_o neither_o of_o the_o nature_n or_o attribute_n 25._o of_o these_o uncreated_a person_n nor_o the_o person_n themselves_o be_v compound_v nor_o god_n compound_v of_o the_o nature_n and_o person_n here_o be_v another_o very_a great_a difference_n between_o create_a and_o uncreated_a person_n who_o have_v life_n and_o be_v life_n itself_o because_o they_o be_v one_o single_a perfection_n iv._o three_o create_v person_n have_v three_o different_a nature_n difference_n but_o these_o solius_fw-la three_o uncreated_a person_n have_v the_o self_n same_o most_o single_a and_o singular_a nature_n three_o create_v person_n may_v have_v the_o same_o specifical_a nature_n but_o they_o have_v not_o the_o same_o singular_a nature_n create_v person_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o specifical_a nature_n which_o be_v universal_a be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d of_o like_a nature_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o singular_a nature_n they_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d but_o now_o these_o uncreated_a person_n be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o respect_n of_o their_o supra_fw-la singular_a essence_n look_v how_o many_o creatae_fw-la create_v person_n there_o be_v of_o the_o same_o species_n so_o many_o singular_a substance_n there_o be_v of_o that_o species_n for_o a_o divinis_fw-la finite_a nature_n can_v be_v communicate_v to_o several_a proper_a person_n of_o the_o same_o species_n without_o a_o multiplication_n of_o
to_o be_v god_n who_o can_v cease_v to_o be_v god_n but_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o as_o well_o as_o the_o father_n john_n 5._o 20._o and_o have_v the_o selfsame_a divine_a life_n divine_a nature_n divine_a power_n which_o the_o father_n have_v and_o therefore_o the_o school_n conclude_v well_o that_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n have_v the_o 6._o same_o power_n but_o with_o a_o different_a relation_n but_o these_o different_a relation_n do_v not_o superadd_a a_o new_a essence_n a_o new_a divine_a nature_n and_o they_o who_o have_v the_o same_o essence_n must_v needs_o have_v the_o same_o power_n because_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v not_o distinguish_v from_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n and_o the_o father_n do_v communicate_v the_o same_o essence_n and_o power_n which_o the_o son_n receive_v 5._o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n of_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n for_o these_o three_o be_v 14._o equal_a nay_o one_o essential_o one_o one_o god_n with_o the_o most_o perfect_a kind_n of_o unity_n as_o have_v be_v show_v and_o some_o that_o be_v metaphysical_a acknowledge_v that_o nothing_o be_v simple_o 7._o one_o but_o that_o which_o be_v most_o ãâ¦ã_z and_o nothing_o be_v most_o single_o ãâã_d but_o god_n who_o have_v nothing_o in_o himself_o but_o that_o which_o be_v himself_o power_n aristotle_n discourse_v of_o six_o kind_n of_o unity_n say_v that_o thing_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o 1._o in_o respect_n of_o continuity_n because_o they_o be_v one_o continue_a body_n 2._o in_o respect_n of_o their_o subject_n as_o two_o accident_n in_o the_o same_o subject_n 3._o because_o they_o be_v under_o the_o same_o genus_fw-la 4._o because_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o species_n 5._o because_o they_o have_v the_o same_o definition_n but_o then_o he_o conclude_v that_o all_o these_o be_v but_o imperfect_a kind_n of_o unity_n if_o compare_v with_o the_o last_o unity_n which_o be_v 6._o when_o a_o thing_n be_v one_o in_o respect_n of_o its_o single_a and_o indivisible_a essence_n deus_fw-la now_o the_o father_n and_o son_n be_v one_o john_n 10._o 30._o the_o father_n son_n and_o personali_fw-la holy_a ghost_n be_v one_o 1_o john_n 5._o 7._o and_o they_o be_v one_o after_o the_o most_o perfect_a manner_n they_o be_v one_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o most_o single_a and_o indivisible_a essence_n because_o the_o divine_a essence_n be_v most_o single_a and_o perfect_o one_o and_o therefore_o since_o filium_fw-la essence_n and_o power_n be_v not_o distinguish_v in_o god_n it_o follow_v undeniable_o that_o these_o three_o who_o have_v one_o essence_n have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o power_n but_o with_o different_a property_n and_o relation_n this_o truth_n will_v be_v more_o evident_a when_o we_o have_v discourse_v of_o the_o distinction_n of_o these_o three_o divine_a person_n of_o which_o we_o be_v to_o treat_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n vi_o create_v person_n have_v a_o different_a place_n and_o presence_n difference_n but_o uncreated_a person_n be_v omnipresent_v they_o can_v be_v separate_v or_o divide_v from_o one_o another_o in_o respect_n of_o place_n or_o presence_n but_o do_v subsist_v in_o one_o another_o the_o father_n do_v potest_fw-la beget_v the_o son_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o the_o son_n do_v subsist_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n phil._n 2._o 6._o and_o all_o three_o person_n subsist_v in_o the_o proprietatibus_fw-la same_o single_a &_o omnipresent_v nature_n they_o must_v needs_o subsist_v in_o one_o another_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o son_n and_o therefore_o the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o son_n the_o divine_a nature_n of_o the_o son_n be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o the_o son_n be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n these_o three_o glorious_a person_n be_v distinguish_v from_o one_o another_o and_o yet_o they_o do_v subsist_v in_o one_o another_o they_o do_v subsist_v in_o one_o another_o without_o any_o contraction_n another_o commixtion_n or_o confusion_n as_o 11._o damascen_n teach_v the_o schoolman_n to_o speak_v when_o philip_n desire_v christ_n to_o show_v he_o the_o father_n our_o saviour_n answer_v he_o that_o have_v see_v i_o have_v see_v the_o father_n john_n 14._o 9_o because_o he_o be_v the_o image_n of_o his_o father_n person_n and_o the_o illustrious_a brightness_n of_o his_o father_n glory_n nay_o because_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o father_n be_v in_o he_o and_o the_o person_n of_o his_o father_n be_v in_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o call_v upon_o philip_n to_o believe_v that_o his_o father_n be_v in_o he_o john_n 14._o 10_o believe_v thou_o not_o that_o i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o wonder_v you_o shall_v not_o believe_v this_o truth_n it_o be_v a_o special_a article_n of_o your_o faith_n if_o you_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o it_o be_v a_o very_a plain_a article_n for_o you_o have_v some_o sensible_a argument_n to_o confirm_v your_o faith_n in_o this_o point_n both_o from_o my_o word_n and_o from_o my_o work_n you_o may_v hear_v the_o father_n speak_v in_o i_o and_o see_v my_o father_n work_v in_o i_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o i_o speak_v not_o of_o myself_o but_o the_o father_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o he_o do_v the_o work_n joh._n 14._o 10._o and_o then_o he_o press_v the_o point_n home_o upon_o he_o by_o a_o peremptory_a injunction_n in_o the_o 11._o verse_n believe_v i_o that_o i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o or_o else_o believe_v i_o for_o the_o very_a work_n sake_n philip_n may_v hear_v what_o be_v true_o divine_a in_o the_o save_a word_n of_o christ_n and_o see_v what_o be_v divine_a in_o the_o miraculous_a work_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o word_n and_o work_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n make_v both_o effectual_a he_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o believe_v this_o necessary_a point_n that_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o person_n of_o god_n the_o father_n be_v in_o christ._n 38._o give_v i_o leave_v to_o insist_v upon_o this_o point_n for_o there_o be_v more_o in_o it_o then_o we_o can_v well_o observe_v at_o first_o view_n and_o therefore_o our_o saviour_n do_v press_v this_o point_n home_o very_o frequent_o and_o require_v that_o man_n will_v express_o believe_v it_o john_n 10._o 38._o believe_v the_o work_n but_o to_o what_o end_n why_o that_o you_o may_v know_v and_o believe_v that_o the_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o christ_n work_n so_o many_o miracle_n among_o they_o to_o bring_v they_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o and_o the_o father_n do_v mutual_o subsist_v in_o one_o another_o credit_n operibus_fw-la believe_v my_o work_n say_v he_o they_o speak_v i_o to_o be_v god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o i_o be_o not_o guilty_a of_o blasphemy_n because_o i_o say_v i_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o equal_a to_o god_n for_o i_o be_o god_n i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o god_n and_o if_o you_o believe_v that_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o god_n 39_o you_o must_v believe_v that_o i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n and_o substance_n of_o our_o saviour_n discourse_n from_o the_o 25._o verse_n of_o the_o ten_o chapter_n of_o john_n to_o the_o 39_o verse_n of_o that_o chapter_n and_o our_o saviour_n do_v enter_v into_o this_o discourse_n at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o come_v round_o about_o he_o and_o desire_v he_o not_o to_o hold_v they_o in_o suspense_n any_o long_o but_o to_o tell_v they_o plain_o whether_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n or_o no._n john_n 10._o 24._o all_o then_o who_o believe_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o true_a messiah_n the_o only_a saviour_n and_o a_o all_o sufficient_a saviour_n must_v believe_v confess_v and_o acknowledge_v this_o truth_n that_o the_o father_n be_v in_o christ_n and_o christ_n in_o the_o father_n from_o what_o have_v be_v speak_v it_o be_v clear_a and_o evident_a that_o this_o be_v a_o point_n of_o life_n and_o death_n as_o we_o say_v a_o fundamental_a point_n a_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o our_o saviour_n do_v so_o often_o insist_v upon_o it_o in_o the_o 8_o of_o john_n person_n our_o saviour_n tell_v they_o more_o than_o once_o that_o he_o be_v not_o alone_o and_o therefore_o his_o testimony_n of_o himself_o be_v not_o a_o single_a testimony_n but_o his_o father_n who_o be_v with_o he_o and_o in_o he_o do_v bear_v witness_n with_o he_o and_o of_o he_o john_n 8._o 16._o for_o i_o
be_o not_o alone_a but_o i_o and_o the_o father_n that_o send_v i_o i_o be_o one_o that_o bear_v witness_n of_o myself_o and_o the_o father_n that_o send_v i_o bear_v witness_n of_o i_o v_o 18._o and_o he_o that_o send_v i_o be_v with_o i_o the_o father_n have_v not_o leave_v i_o alone_o v_o 29._o this_o point_n be_v difficult_a to_o believe_v that_o christ_n who_o be_v man_n be_v very_a god_n the_o same_o god_n with_o the_o father_n a_o different_a person_n from_o the_o father_n yet_o subsist_v in_o the_o father_n who_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n but_o as_o rollock_n say_v well_o though_o this_o point_n be_v most_o 11_o difficult_a yet_o it_o be_v most_o necessary_a and_o therefore_o we_o must_v beg_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v get_v above_o nature_n and_o see_v the_o father_n in_o christ_n and_o christ_n in_o the_o father_n for_o the_o natural_a man_n do_v not_o relish_n receive_v or_o perceive_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 2._o 14_o our_o saviour_n tell_v his_o disciple_n that_o when_o the_o spirit_n be_v pour_v out_o more_o plentiful_o upon_o they_o than_o they_o shall_v know_v he_o to_o be_v in_o his_o father_n the_o father_n will_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o at_o that_o day_n you_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o in_o my_o father_n john_n 14._o 16_o 17_o 20._o and_o in_o the_o sixteen_o of_o john_n the_o spirit_n have_v convince_v the_o disciple_n of_o this_o weighty_a truth_n for_o they_o say_v by_o this_o we_o believe_v that_o thou_o come_v forth_o from_o god_n jesus_n answer_v they_o do_v you_o now_o believe_v behold_v the_o hour_n come_v yea_o be_v now_o come_v that_o you_o shall_v be_v scatter_v every_o man_n to_o his_o own_o and_o shall_v leave_v i_o alone_o and_o yet_o i_o be_o not_o alone_a because_o the_o father_n be_v with_o i_o john_n 16._o 30_o 31_o 32._o in_o these_o and_o divers_a other_o place_n our_o saviour_n do_v declare_v this_o truth_n unto_o we_o that_o he_o be_v in_o his_o father_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o weighty_a truth_n of_o very_a great_a consequence_n and_o high_a concernment_n he_o will_v not_o insist_v so_o much_o upon_o it_o it_o be_v the_o mutual_a in-subsistence_n and_o coessential_a daâdanum_n omnipresence_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v gaudensque_fw-la coessential_a with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n must_v needs_o be_v in_o they_o both_o from_o who_o he_o proceed_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o inveheretur_fw-la divine_a nature_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o a_o infinite_a nature_n can_v be_v pour_v forth_o beyond_o itself_o because_o it_o be_v boundless_a and_o therefore_o when_o we_o read_v 1_o cor._n 2._o 11._o what_o man_n know_v the_o thing_n of_o a_o man_n save_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o he_o even_o so_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n know_v no_o man_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n we_o may_v safe_o 128._o add_v which_o be_v in_o god_n because_o he_o do_v proceed_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a communicatur_fw-la indivisible_a and_o boundless_a nature_n the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o a_o nature_n of_o infinite_a and_o boundless_a perfection_n can_v be_v communicate_v to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o infinite_a to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o itself_o because_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o infinite_a thing_n but_o itself_o there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o infinite_a and_o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o glorious_a person_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a god_n upon_o these_o groud_n we_o may_v answer_v many_o question_n if_o you_o ask_v where_o god_n be_v before_o the_o world_n be_v make_v i_o answer_v that_o he_o be_v then_o just_o where_o he_o be_v now_o in_o himself_o simplicissimam_fw-la dic_fw-la ubi_fw-la tunc_fw-la esset_fw-la cum_fw-la praeter_fw-la âum_fw-la nihil_fw-la esset_fw-la tunc_fw-la ubi_fw-la nunc_fw-la in_fw-la se_fw-la quoniam_fw-la sibi_fw-la sufficit_fw-la ipse_fw-la if_o you_o ask_v where_o the_o father_n be_v i_o answer_v in_o the_o son_n if_o you_o ask_v where_o the_o son_n be_v i_o answer_v in_o the_o father_n if_o you_o ask_v where_o the_o spirit_n be_v i_o answer_v he_o be_v both_o in_o the_o father_n and_o in_o the_o son_n and_o they_o both_o in_o he_o god_n ââax_fw-la be_v in_o all_o three_o person_n and_o all_o three_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n and_o in_o one_o another_o and_o so_o they_o do_v and_o will_v remain_v to_o all_o eternity_n because_o they_o be_v coessential_a because_o they_o be_v one_o omnipresent_v and_o eternal_a god_n the_o godhead_n be_v not_o shut_v up_o in_o the_o narrow_a circle_n of_o the_o universe_n the_o whole_a godhead_n be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o whole_a godhead_n be_v out_o the_o world_n for_o the_o world_n can_v contain_v the_o true_a god_n who_o do_v create_v and_o do_v uphold_v the_o world_n and_o the_o single_a godhead_n can_v be_v divide_v and_o therefore_o we_o must_v not_o conceive_v that_o part_n of_o the_o godhead_n be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o part_n of_o it_o out_o of_o the_o world_n but_o the_o whole_a godhead_n be_v definitive_a every_o where_o it_o be_v not_o include_v in_o any_o place_n or_o exclude_v from_o any_o place_n the_o heaven_n and_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n can_v contain_v he_o 1_o king_n 8._o 27._o his_o perfection_n be_v high_a than_o heaven_n and_o deep_a than_o hell_n job_n 11._o 8._o from_o what_o have_v be_v say_v it_o be_v most_o clear_a that_o since_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n be_v omnipresent_v and_o the_o self_n same_o indivisible_a essence_n be_v in_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n all_o three_o must_v needs_o mutual_o subsist_v in_o one_o another_o though_o the_o person_n be_v distinguish_v they_o can_v be_v sanctus_n separate_v divide_a or_o contract_v and_o therefore_o this_o six_o difference_n between_o create_a and_o uncreated_a person_n be_v so_o remarkable_a that_o i_o need_v not_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o humane_a person_n be_v separate_v as_o well_o as_o distinguish_v tot_fw-la sunt_fw-la humanitates_fw-la quot_fw-la homines_fw-la and_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o angelical_a person_n have_v a_o limit_a presence_n because_o they_o have_v a_o finite_a essince_n but_o it_o be_v otherwise_o in_o divine_a person_n for_o the_o father_n work_v in_o the_o son_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n the_o father_n subsist_v in_o the_o son_n and_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o these_o coessential_a and_o omnipresent_v person_n who_o do_v subsist_v with_o he_o as_o they_o be_v both_o from_o he_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n i_o need_v say_v no_o more_o concern_v angel_n then_o what_o be_v common_o say_v angeli_fw-la sunt_fw-la alicuòi_fw-la definitive_a sunt_fw-la enim_fw-la in_o svo_fw-la vbi_fw-la non_fw-la per_fw-la operationem_fw-la vel_fw-la circumscriptionem_fw-la sed_fw-la per_fw-la designationem_fw-la definitivam_fw-la angel_n be_v natural_o somewhere_o though_o they_o be_v not_o in_o any_o place_n by_o extension_n of_o part_n yet_o their_o finite_a nature_n be_v contain_v within_o certain_a bound_n and_o limit_n hence_o 66._o it_o be_v that_o some_o learned_a man_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v improper_a to_o say_v that_o god_n be_v 5._o somewhere_o because_o he_o be_v everywhere_o somewhere_o be_v a_o definitive_a word_n vii_o create_a person_n have_v many_o other_o different_a accident_n beside_o place_n difference_n of_o which_o we_o have_v speak_v and_o âime_n or_o duration_n of_o which_o we_o be_v to_o speak_v it_o will_v not_o be_v necessary_a or_o useful_a to_o discourse_v of_o every_o particular_a but_o that_o which_o i_o intend_v to_o insist_v upon_o under_o this_o head_n be_v that_o create_v person_n be_v distinguish_v from_o one_o another_o by_o a_o 24._o heap_n of_o accident_n and_o therefore_o it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o make_v good_a of_o this_o seven_o difference_n to_o show_v that_o divine_a person_n be_v not_o distinguish_v by_o a_o congery_n or_o heap_v of_o accident_n because_o there_o be_v no_o accident_n at_o all_o in_o god_n for_o the_o be_v of_o god_n be_v infinite_o perfect_a and_o singular_o single_a as_o have_v be_v prove_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v infinite_o below_o the_o single_a perfection_n of_o god_n to_o be_v compound_v of_o a_o substance_n and_o accident_n for_o the_o adorn_v or_o perfect_v of_o his_o glorious_a be_v relation_n be_v not_o accident_n in_o god_n the_o dependentiam_fw-la reltion_n of_o one_o coessential_a person_n to_o another_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o necessary_a relation_n which_o do_v never_o begin_v to_o be_v and_o can_v cease_v to_o be_v the_o relation_n of_o god_n to_o the_o creature_n can_v be_v real_a because_o it_o be_v such_o a_o relation_n as_o may_v not_o
which_o keep_v truth_n for_o ever_o read_v and_o consider_v the_o six_o first_o verse_n of_o the_o 146._o psalm_n there_o be_v a_o great_a emphasis_n in_o the_o six_o verse_n which_o keep_v truth_n for_o ever_o o_o let_v we_o declare_v it_o to_o the_o follow_a generation_n that_o âhis_v god_n be_v our_o god_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o and_o he_o will_v be_v our_o guide_n even_o unto_o death_n psal._n 48._o 13_o 14._o happy_a it_o be_v for_o we_o that_o we_o be_v redeem_v by_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n who_o offer_v up_o himself_o by_o by_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n his_o divine_a and_o eternal_a nature_n heb_n 9_o 14._o that_o he_o may_v bring_v in_o everlasting_a righteousness_n dan._n 9_o 24._o obtain_v eternal_a redemption_n and_o purchase_v a_o eternal_a inheritance_n for_o we_o heb._n 9_o 12._o 15._o happy_a thrice_o happy_a it_o be_v for_o we_o that_o we_o be_v bear_v of_o incorruptible_a seed_n which_o will_v abide_v in_o we_o for_o ever_o for_o we_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n who_o will_v perfect_v his_o work_n in_o we_o and_o be_v our_o everlasting_a comforter_n final_o all_o three_o uncreated_a person_n will_v be_v our_o all-sufficient_a and_o satisfactory_a portion_n and_o reward_n for_o evermore_o ix_o three_o create_v person_n have_v different_a action_n and_o operation_n person_n because_o they_o have_v different_a singular_a nature_n different_a power_n etc._n etc._n as_o have_v be_v show_v in_o this_o very_a chapter_n all_o action_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n upon_o the_o creature_n be_v undivided_a nay_o indivisible_a how_o personal_a action_n ad_fw-la infra_fw-la differ_v i_o be_o to_o declare_v at_o large_a in_o the_o next_o chapter_n where_o i_o be_o to_o show_v how_o these_o three_o glorious_a person_n who_o can_v be_v divide_v be_v true_o distinguish_v from_o one_o another_o only_o before_o i_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n it_o will_v be_v requisite_a to_o note_v that_o though_o the_o son_n can_v be_v say_v to_o beget_v himself_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o passive_a in_o that_o eternal_a generation_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v above_o the_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v communicate_v to_o the_o son_n by_o generation_n be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o son_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o father_n the_o father_n do_v necessary_o beget_v the_o son_n in_o the_o power_n of_o that_o nature_n and_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o that_o selfsame_a single_a and_o indivisible_a nature_n and_o that_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v communicate_v to_o the_o son_n seipso_fw-la be_v not_o beget_v by_o the_o father_n but_o be_v of_o itself_o and_o therefore_o we_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n of_o himself_o though_o he_o be_v not_o a_o son_n of_o himself_o but_o of_o the_o father_n by_o eternal_a generation_n because_o the_o father_n be_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o subsist_v life_n i_o may_v proceed_v to_o treat_v of_o other_o difference_n that_o common_a rule_n actiones_fw-la sunt_fw-la suppositorum_fw-la 41._o be_v true_a of_o divine_a action_n and_o uncreated_a person_n but_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o there_o be_v many_o action_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n both_o when_o it_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o union_n with_o and_o when_o it_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o separation_n from_o the_o body_n which_o can_v be_v proper_o and_o true_o call_v action_n of_o a_o person_n but_o i_o shall_v not_o descend_v so_o low_a as_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o such_o difference_n the_o nine_o difference_n which_o have_v be_v insist_v on_o be_v all_o considerable_a and_o from_o they_o all_o we_o may_v safe_o conclude_v that_o the_o word_n subsistence_n or_o person_n can_v be_v attribute_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n to_o god_n angel_n and_o man_n a_o divine_a person_n be_v a_o spiritual_a and_o infinite_a subsistent_n which_o must_v not_o be_v consider_v as_o abstract_v from_o but_o as_o subsist_v in_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o as_o relate_v to_o those_o other_o coessential_a person_n from_o which_o he_o be_v sufficient_o distinguish_v by_o some_o personal_a and_o incommunicable_a property_n and_o therefore_o subsistence_n be_v attribute_v to_o god_n after_o the_o most_o excellent_a and_o glorious_a manner_n a_o person_n signify_v the_o most_o excellent_a kind_n of_o subsistent_n a_o understand_a subsistent_n as_o have_v be_v show_v but_o then_o a_o uncreated_a person_n a_o divine_a person_n do_v infinite_o excel_v and_o transcend_v the_o person_n of_o the_o most_o glorious_a angel_n in_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v remove_v all_o those_o imperfection_n from_o our_o thought_n which_o be_v in_o create_a person_n when_o we_o meditate_v or_o discouse_n of_o these_o divine_a and_o uncreated_a person_n that_o we_o may_v think_v and_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n chap._n vii_o the_o three_o uncreated_a divine_a and_o coessential_a subsistent_n be_v sufficient_o distinguish_v though_o they_o can_v be_v divide_v we_o be_v now_o come_v to_o treat_v of_o that_o profound_a mystery_n scrâpionem_fw-la at_o which_o man_n and_o angel_n stand_v amaze_v how_o can_v three_o be_v one_o say_v the_o disputer_n of_o this_o world_n or_o one_o be_v three_o can_v one_o be_v distinguish_v again_o and_o again_o from_o himself_o o_o bold_a fool_n say_v athanasius_n why_o do_v you_o not_o lay_v aside_o your_o curiosity_n and_o inquire_v no_o far_o after_o a_o trinity_n then_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o trinity_n the_o scripture_n say_v there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n and_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v this_o one_o god_n and_o yet_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v three_o three_o and_o yet_o one_o three_o person_n and_o yet_o one_o god_n we_o have_v show_v above_o that_o the_o godhead_n can_v be_v multiply_v now_o we_o be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o person_n be_v distinguish_v and_o what_o kind_n of_o distinction_n there_o be_v between_o these_o three_o divine_a and_o uncreated_a person_n 1._o these_o divine_a and_o uncreated_a person_n be_v sufficient_o distinguish_v to_o our_o apprehension_n samosit_n who_o ought_v to_o judge_v believe_v speak_v worship_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 2._o these_o uncreated_a person_n be_v true_o distinguish_v from_o one_o another_o before_o there_o be_v any_o scripture_n any_o world_n for_o the_o coexistencie_n and_o distinction_n of_o these_o glorious_a person_n be_v eternal_a and_o therefore_o this_o distinction_n can_v be_v ground_v upon_o the_o mere_a phrase_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v the_o true_a intent_n of_o god_n in_o several_a plain_a expression_n of_o scripture_n to_o declare_v unto_o we_o the_o distinction_n of_o these_o divine_a and_o uncreated_a person_n i_o shall_v prove_v this_o point_n full_o and_o clear_o by_o certain_a step_n and_o degree_n 1._o these_o uncreated_a person_n have_v distinct_a and_o proper_a name_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n name_n the_o father_n the_o son_n or_o the_o word_n and_o the_o holy-ghost_n or_o spirit_n now_o that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v tritheite_n or_o sabellian_n let_v we_o consider_v that_o these_o three_o name_n do_v not_o signify_v three_o different_a nature_n 41._o and_o yet_o they_o do_v signify_v three_o different_a person_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o one_o person_n can_v be_v praedicat_v of_o another_o the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o son_n nor_o be_v the_o son_n the_o father_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o either_o of_o they_o nor_o be_v either_o of_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v three_o distinct_a person_n of_o the_o godhead_n 2._o these_o uncreated_a person_n be_v coequal_a distinct_a and_o therefore_o they_o be_v distinct_a it_o be_v most_o absurd_a to_o say_v that_o the_o same_o person_n be_v equal_a to_o himself_o but_o the_o son_n be_v say_v to_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o father_n philip._n 2._o therefore_o the_o son_n be_v not_o the_o father_n 93._o we_o do_v usual_o say_v that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v equal_a in_o power_n to_o note_v a_o distinction_n of_o person_n but_o then_o when_o we_o speak_v strict_o we_o do_v not_o say_v the_o power_n of_o the_o person_n be_v equal_a but_o we_o say_v the_o power_n of_o the_o person_n be_v the_o same_o to_o note_v the_o unity_n of_o their_o essence_n we_o say_v the_o person_n be_v equal_a in_o power_n goodness_n wisdom_n etc._n etc._n to_o note_v that_o one_o person_n do_v not_o exceed_v another_o in_o degree_n of_o wisdom_n power_n etc._n etc._n because_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o degree_n in_o that_o which_o be_v infinite_a and_o the_o power_n wisdom_n etc._n etc._n of_o all_o the_o three_o person_n be_v the_o same_o infinite_a perfection_n because_o all_o three_o have_v the_o same_o infinite_a essence_n and_o therefore_o when_o we_o look_v upon_o power_n in_o a_o common_a notion_n
as_o refer_v to_o the_o divine_a essence_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o three_o person_n we_o say_v it_o be_v the_o same_o power_n but_o when_o we_o look_v upon_o power_n in_o a_o singular_a notion_n as_o it_o be_v communicate_v after_o a_o singular_a manner_n to_o this_o or_o that_o person_n we_o say_v this_o person_n be_v equal_a to_o that_o in_o power_n the_o father_n equal_a to_o the_o son_n the_o spirit_n equal_a to_o both_o to_o note_v the_o distinction_n of_o the_o person_n and_o not_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o power_n because_o the_o selfsame_a almighty_a power_n be_v communicate_v to_o the_o several_a person_n in_o a_o several_a way_n power_n be_v in_o the_o father_n of_o and_o from_o himself_o that_o be_v not_o from_o any_o other_o person_n the_o same_o power_n be_v communicate_v to_o the_o son_n but_o it_o be_v communicate_v to_o he_o by_o eternal_a generation_n and_o to_o the_o spirit_n by_o eternal_a procession_n the_o âame_n power_n than_o be_v communicate_v to_o different_a coequal_a person_n in_o a_o different_a way_n as_o we_o shall_v more_o full_o declare_v before_o we_o conclude_v this_o seven_o chapter_n 3._o the_o uncreated_a person_n be_v sufficient_o distinguish_v by_o their_o number_n number_n the_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v the_o first_o entity_n the_o first_o unity_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v uncapable_a of_o number_n because_o it_o be_v most_o singular_o single_a and_o actual_o infinite_a samosat_n it_o be_v not_o proper_a if_o we_o speak_v strict_o to_o say_v that_o god_n be_v one_o in_o number_n we_o shall_v rather_o say_v that_o god_n be_v one_o and_o a_o only_a one_o deus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la unus_fw-la numero_fw-la sed_fw-la unicus_fw-la but_o the_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n be_v three_o in_o number_n the_o scripture_n speak_v express_o of_o three_o these_o three_o columbâ_fw-la 1_o john_n 5._o 7._o if_o any_o man_n in_o athanasius_n his_o time_n ask_v how_o many_o person_n subsist_v in_o the_o godhead_n they_o be_v wont_a to_o send_v he_o to_o jordan_n go_v say_v they_o to_o jordan_n and_o there_o you_o may_v hear_v and_o see_v the_o bless_a trinity_n or_o if_o you_o will_v believe_v the_o holy_a scripture_n read_v the_o three_o chapter_n of_o matthew_n the_o 16_o and_o 17._o verse_n august_n for_o there_o 1._o the_o father_n speak_v in_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n 17._o and_o own_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n say_v this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n etc._n etc._n 2._o the_o son_n go_v down_o into_o the_o water_n and_o be_v baptize_v 3._o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v visible_o descend_v upon_o jesus_n christ._n in_o the_o fourteen_o of_o john_n we_o have_v a_o plain_a demonstration_n of_o this_o truth_n 17._o i_o say_v the_o son_n will_n pray_v the_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n john_n 14._o 16_o 17._o may_v we_o not_o safe_o conclude_v from_o hence_o that_o the_o spirit_n be_v a_o distinct_a person_n another_o person_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n for_o the_o text_n be_v clear_a the_o son_n will_v pray_v and_o the_o father_n will_v give_v another_o comforter_n we_o know_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o another_o god_n he_o be_v the_o same_o god_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v confess_v that_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o another_o person_n he_o shall_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n verse_n 16_o 17._o and_o again_o in_o the_o 26._o verse_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n but_o when_o the_o comforter_n be_v come_v who_o i_o will_v send_v unto_o you_o from_o the_o father_n even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n what_o can_v there_o be_v more_o express_a or_o clear_a the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o to_o reckon_v right_a and_o we_o see_v the_o divine_a person_n be_v reckon_v three_o in_o number_n one_o person_n be_v not_o another_o there_o be_v diverse_a person_n there_o be_v three_o person_n the_o number_n number_v the_o person_n number_v be_v name_v by_o their_o distinct_a and_o proper_a name_n the_o number_n number_v be_v express_o set_v down_o in_o sacred_a record_n we_o be_v not_o more_o exact_a in_o any_o account_n than_o we_o be_v in_o reckon_n of_o witness_n who_o testimony_n be_v produce_v in_o a_o business_n of_o great_a consequence_n and_o high_a concernment_n now_o in_o the_o great_a question_n about_o the_o messiah_n witness_n be_v produce_v to_o assure_v we_o that_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o virgin_n and_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o true_a messiah_n the_o only_a all-sufficient_a saviour_n of_o his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n and_o there_o be_v three_o witness_n name_v and_o produce_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o weighty_a point_n now_o one_o person_n that_o have_v three_o name_n or_o two_o person_n and_o a_o attribute_n of_o one_o or_o both_o person_n can_v pass_v for_o three_o witness_n in_o any_o fair_a and_o reasonable_a account_n we_o be_v sure_a god_n reckon_v right_a and_o he_o reckon_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n for_o three_o witness_n and_o he_o do_v not_o reckon_v these_o three_o and_o the_o godhead_n for_o four_o as_o they_o do_v who_o dream_n of_o a_o quaternity_n because_o these_o three_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o let_v we_o then_o be_v exact_a in_o observe_v since_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v so_o exact_a in_o make_v of_o the_o account_n in_o the_o eight_o of_o john_n the_o pharisee_n object_n that_o our_o saviour_n do_v bear_v record_n of_o himself_o and_o do_v conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o therefore_o his_o record_n be_v not_o true_a 13_o john_n 8._o 13._o our_o saviour_n answer_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n 14._o though_o i_o bear_v record_n of_o myself_o yet_o my_o record_n be_v true_a for_o i_o be_o not_o alone_a 16._o but_o i_o and_o the_o father_n that_o send_v i_o 17._o and_o it_o be_v write_v in_o your_o law_n that_o the_o testimony_n of_o two_o man_n be_v true_a i_o be_o one_o that_o bear_v witness_n of_o myself_o 18._o and_o the_o father_n that_o send_v i_o bear_v witness_n of_o i_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a and_o evident_a by_o this_o discourse_n that_o our_o bless_a lord_n do_v make_v a_o fair_a legal_a just_a account_n for_o he_o cite_v the_o law_n concern_v the_o validity_n of_o a_o testimony_n give_v in_o by_o two_o witness_n and_o then_o he_o reckon_v his_o father_n for_o one_o witness_n and_o himself_o for_o another_o i_o be_o one_o say_v he_o and_o my_o father_n be_v another_o i_o and_o my_o father_n make_v two_o sufficient_a witness_n in_o a_o just_a and_o legal_a account_n there_o be_v another_o say_v he_o that_o bear_v witness_n of_o i_o 32_o and_o i_o know_v that_o the_o witness_n which_o he_o witness_v of_o i_o be_v true_a john_n 5_o 32._o there_o be_v another_o say_v he_o he_o do_v not_o mean_v another_o god_n for_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o his_o power_n and_o godhead_n 30_o he_o say_v i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o john_n 10._o 30._o christ_n and_o his_o father_n be_v one_o god_n but_o christ_n and_o his_o father_n be_v two_o distinct_a person_n for_o they_o be_v reckon_v as_o two_o distinct_a witness_n and_o one_o person_n must_v not_o be_v reckon_v for_o two_o witness_n there_o be_v another_o that_o bear_v witness_v 37._o john_n 5._o 32._o and_o the_o father_n himself_o v_o 37._o bear_v witness_n of_o i_o well_o then_o christ_n be_v one_o witness_n the_o father_n be_v another_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o three_o witness_n 1_o john_n 5._o 7._o we_o see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v as_o plain_o in_o this_o point_n as_o we_o do_v when_o we_o teach_v a_o child_n to_o tell_v one_o two_o and_o three_o for_o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o if_o we_o peruse_v the_o scripture_n diligent_o as_o we_o ought_v we_o shall_v find_v that_o these_o witness_n be_v three_o person_n who_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o bless_a god_n they_o be_v one_o in_o nature_n though_o three_o in_o subsistence_n to_o show_v that_o these_o three_o person_n be_v not_o to_o be_v reckon_v as_o three_o man_n be_v who_o have_v three_o distinct_a singular_a nature_n real_o divide_v and_o separate_v for_o these_o three_o glorious_a person_n subsist_v in_o one_o another_o and_o have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o single_a undivided_a and_o indivisible_a nature_n and_o they_o be_v three_o witness_n three_o person_n true_o distinct_a john_n 1._o 14_o 18._o cap_n 5_o 3â_n cap._n 14_o 16._o iv._o the_o divine_a person_n be_v distinguish_v action_n by_o their_o inward_a and_o personal_a action_n the_o father_n do_v from_o all_o eternity_n communicate_v the_o est_fw-la live_a essence_n of_o god_n to_o the_o son_n in_o a_o
christ_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n breath_n forth_o the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o spirit_n with_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirati_fw-la on_o when_o christ_n breathe_v upon_o his_o disciple_n he_o say_v receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o show_v that_o he_o have_v power_n to_o dispose_v of_o the_o spirit_n who_o do_v from_o all_o eternity_n breath_n forth_o the_o spirit_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v breathe_v forth_o necessary_o by_o both_o i_o say_v necessary_o because_o eternal_o there_o be_v a_o double_a and_o eternal_a necessity_n of_o it_o both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o person_n breathe_v and_o the_o person_n breathe_v the_o spirit_n be_v not_o breathe_v forth_o as_o a_o creature_n but_o as_o a_o divine_a person_n a_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n he_o be_v breathe_v forth_o by_o procession_n and_o subsist_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n he_o proceed_v from_o both_o and_o yet_o in_o both_o for_o one_o divine_a person_n can_v subsist_v out_o of_o another_o but_o all_o three_o subsist_v in_o the_o same_o undivided_a and_o infinite_a nature_n but_o the_o socinian_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o god_n the_o father_n father_n to_o which_o we_o answer_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o natural_a virtue_n of_o the_o father_n no_o more_o than_o he_o be_v the_o natural_a virtue_n of_o the_o son_n or_o of_o himself_o for_o the_o virtue_n of_o god_n be_v the_o essence_n of_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v his_o own_o essence_n and_o all_o three_o person_n have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o essence_n the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n be_v call_v the_o power_n of_o the_o father_n luke_n 1._o 35._o because_o the_o spirit_n work_v as_o he_o proceed_v in_o order_n the_o father_n work_v in_o the_o son_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n but_o the_o spirit_n who_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o father_n the_o spirit_n do_v not_o breath_n forth_o himself_o or_o proceed_v from_o himself_o the_o h._n ghost_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o himself_o john_n 16._o 13._o but_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o himself_o because_o he_o be_v of_o himself_o he_o be_v beget_v of_o none_o proceed_v from_o none_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v send_v by_o none_o of_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v receive_v of_o christ_n be_v send_v by_o christ_n therefore_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o the_o father_n but_o clear_o distinguish_v from_o he_o john_n 16._o 14_o 15._o john_n 15._o 26._o john_n 14._o 16_o 17_o matth._n 3._o 16_o 17._o matth._n 28._o 19_o 2_o cor._n 13._o 14._o and_o in_o diverse_a other_o place_n the_o father_n and_o the_o spirit_n be_v personal_o distinguish_v but_o they_o be_v essential_o one_o 1_o john_n 5._o 7._o they_o be_v one_o in_o power_n nature_n will_n and_o yet_o be_v three_o person_n three_o witness_n who_o deliver_v one_o and_o the_o same_o divine_a testimony_n 17._o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v as_o divine_a as_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o witness_n of_o god_n be_v great_a verse_n 9_o must_v refer_v to_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o father_n word_n and_o spirit_n verse_n 7._o though_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n be_v special_o insist_v on_o in_o the_o follow_a word_n for_o all_o the_o three_o witness_n in_o heaven_n give_v one_o and_o the_o same_o testimony_n and_o that_o testimony_n be_v divine_a the_o h._n ghost_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v of_o god_n 14._o the_o spirit_n of_o elohim_n gen._n 1._o 2._o the_o spirit_n of_o jehovah_n isa._n 11._o 2._o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v jehovah_n and_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o the_o four_o chapter_n from_o the_o 31._o page_n to_o the_o forty_o the_o distinction_n between_o the_o father_n and_o the_o spirit_n will_v be_v more_o evident_a when_o we_o come_v to_o treat_v of_o the_o personal_a property_n the_o socinian_o be_v so_o confound_v in_o this_o point_n 15._o that_o they_o be_v force_v to_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v no_o accidental_a virtue_n no_o finite_a substance_n no_o creature_n but_o the_o uncreated_a and_o substantial_a virtue_n or_o power_n of_o god_n because_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o god_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o god_n as_o eniedinus_fw-la confess_v and_o smalcius_n acknowledge_v that_o it_o may_v be_v grant_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n because_o whatsoever_o be_v natural_o in_o god_n may_v be_v call_v god_n but_o i_o shall_v prove_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o only_a god_n but_o a_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n distinct_a from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n jesus_n christ_n be_v call_v the_o power_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 1._o 24._o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o power_n of_o god_n luke_n 1._o 35_o luke_n 24_o 49._o the_o son_n be_v a_o distinct_a person_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v as_o the_o ancient_n use_v to_o call_v he_o the_o personal_a virtue_n or_o power_n of_o the_o father_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n by_o who_o he_o do_v declare_v and_o put_v forth_o his_o power_n 12._o and_o therefore_o the_o spirit_n be_v say_v to_o work_v and_o distrioute_v all_o gift_n and_o grace_n as_o he_o will_v father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o will_v and_o power_n still_o we_o must_v bottom_n upon_o that_o truth_n these_o three_o be_v one_o 1_o john_n 5._o 7._o that_o this_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v mysterious_a and_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o unsearchable_a we_o do_v ready_o grant_v and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v not_o presume_v to_o define_v after_o what_o manner_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v breathe_v forth_o from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n but_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o it_o can_v be_v any_o corporeal_a procession_n the_o ancient_n do_v constant_o distinguish_v between_o procession_n and_o generation_n but_o the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o christ_n be_v spiritual_a 14._o the_o procession_n of_o the_o spirit_n must_v needs_o be_v spiritual_a for_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o only_o essential_o a_o spirit_n as_o the_o father_n and_o god_n the_o son_n be_v but_o he_o be_v personal_o a_o spirit_n the_o more_o perfect_a and_o spiritual_a this_o procession_n be_v the_o more_o evident_a it_o be_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v breathe_v forth_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n they_o who_o say_v the_o son_n do_v proceed_v from_o the_o father_n use_v that_o term_n proceed_v in_o a_o general_a and_o very_a large_a signification_n procession_n but_o then_o they_o say_v that_o the_o son_n do_v proceed_v by_o generation_n the_o spirit_n by_o spiration_n thereby_o endeavour_v to_o distinguish_v the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v 2._o they_o say_v the_o son_n do_v proceed_v from_o the_o father_n alone_o principle_n and_o therefore_o be_v aid_n to_o be_v send_v by_o the_o father_n only_o but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n both_o and_o therefore_o be_v say_v to_o be_v send_v by_o the_o son_n as_o well_o as_o the_o father_n luke_n 24._o 49._o john_n 15._o 26._o john_n 14._o 26._o john_n 16._o 14._o but_o christ_n be_v send_v by_o the_o father_n only_o because_o he_o be_v of_o the_o father_n only_o and_o be_v not_o beget_v of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o father_n be_v not_o send_v by_o any_o because_o he_o be_v of_o himself_o hereby_o they_o endeavour_v to_o distinguish_v the_o principle_n of_o these_o divine_a procession_n 3._o the_o son_n do_v proceed_v as_o the_o second_o person_n order_n the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o hereby_o they_o endeavour_v to_o distinguish_v the_o order_n of_o these_o divine_a procession_n we_o know_v this_o divine_a procession_n be_v 1._o spiritual_a 2._o eternal_a because_o divine_a 3._o immutable_a this_o procession_n be_v not_o a_o change_n of_o the_o spirit_n from_o not_o be_v to_o be_v communicatio_fw-la or_o from_o a_o imperfect_a be_v to_o a_o more_o perfect_a be_v we_o know_v that_o procession_n can_v be_v a_o motion_n from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o for_o the_o spirit_n be_v omnipresent_v fill_v all_o place_n and_o therefore_o can_v change_v its_o place_n 4._o necessary_a the_o father_n and_o son_n do_v from_o all_o eternity_n breath_n forth_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n not_o by_o any_o alienation_n of_o the_o godhead_n from_o themselves_o but_o by_o a_o unspeakable_a communication_n of_o the_o same_o divine_a nature_n to_o a_o three_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o this_o communication_n be_v natural_a and_o therefore_o necessary_a it_o be_v but_o not_o involuntary_a the_o father_n and_o son_n do_v not_o breath_n forth_o the_o spirit_n by_o any_o coaction_n
or_o compulsion_n 6._o and_o yet_o we_o can_v say_v that_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n do_v arbitrary_o or_o free_o breathe_v forth_o the_o spirit_n as_o all_o three_o person_n do_v create_v the_o world_n for_o they_o do_v create_v the_o world_n with_o such_o liberty_n and_o freedom_n as_o that_o they_o may_v not_o have_v create_v it_o but_o they_o do_v natural_o and_o necessary_o breathe_v forth_o the_o spirit_n and_o can_v not_o but_o breathe_v he_o forth_o this_o inward_a and_o personal_a act_n be_v natural_a such_o be_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o godhead_n that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v communicate_v to_o all_o three_o person_n and_o such_o be_v the_o coessential_a unity_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o that_o all_o three_o do_v necessary_o and_o natural_o subsist_v in_o the_o selfsame_a entire_a and_o infinite_a godhead_n true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n but_o nature_n be_v a_o more_o comprehensive_a word_n and_o therefore_o according_a to_o our_o manner_n of_o apprehension_n and_o in_o strictness_n of_o speech_n it_o be_v more_o proper_a to_o say_v that_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n do_v breath_n forth_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o perfection_n of_o their_o nature_n then_o to_o say_v they_o breathe_v he_o forth_o of_o their_o own_o will_n or_o by_o some_o arbitrary_a decree_n for_o than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o there_o may_v have_v be_v but_o two_o person_n of_o and_o in_o the_o godhead_n that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v exist_v and_o subsist_v contingent_o and_o by_o consequent_a that_o the_o spirit_n be_v no_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n the_o acute_a samosatenian_a who_o learn_v junius_n confute_v desire_v to_o know_v whether_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v produce_v by_o a_o action_n of_o the_o will_n junius_n answer_v reijcere_fw-la if_o you_o oppose_v the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n we_o can_v say_v that_o the_o spirit_n do_v proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n by_o their_o will_n but_o by_o their_o nature_n because_o the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n be_v coessential_a for_o as_o the_o father_n do_v beget_v his_o natural_a son_n by_o his_o nature_n so_o do_v the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n breath_n forth_o the_o coessential_a spirit_n by_o their_o nature_n nor_o be_v it_o safe_a to_o say_v say_v junius_n that_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o father_n do_v breath_n forth_o the_o spirit_n by_o a_o action_n of_o his_o will_n but_o rather_o according_a to_o that_o manner_n the_o infinite_a distance_n be_v observe_v between_o what_o be_v humane_a and_o divine_a after_o which_o the_o will_n do_v proceed_v in_o man_n and_o this_o say_v he_o be_v but_o a_o weak_a resemblance_n of_o the_o school_n which_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o defend_v for_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v pure_a single_a infinite_a and_o therefore_o we_o must_v not_o follow_v those_o resemblance_n too_o far_o which_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o understanding_n and_o the_o will_n in_o creature_n because_o even_o that_o point_n be_v very_o disputable_a and_o the_o most_o single_a and_o perfect_a nature_n of_o god_n do_v infinite_o transcend_v the_o perfection_n of_o angel_n i_o believe_v you_o be_v as_o i_o be_o willing_a to_o get_v out_o of_o the_o dark_a but_o enough_o of_o that_o for_o we_o read_v that_o the_o saint_n be_v beget_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n james_n 1._o 18._o but_o we_o must_v not_o conceive_v that_o christ_n be_v beget_v or_o the_o spirit_n breathe_v forth_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o we_o be_v regenerate_v the_o spirit_n be_v breathe_v forth_o in_o a_o connaturall_a and_o coessential_a way_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o single_a and_o entire_a godhead_n but_o we_o be_v regenerate_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o spirit_n do_v proceed_v equal_o from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n for_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o equality_n of_o divine_a person_n can_v be_v maintain_v if_o that_o principle_n be_v deny_v peter_n lombard_n and_o his_o adherent_n do_v mince_v the_o point_n with_o a_o very_a dangerous_a distinction_n that_o the_o spirit_n do_v proceed_v principal_o from_o the_o father_n and_o less_o principal_o from_o the_o son_n but_o it_o be_v clear_a &_o evident_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o coessential_a person_n have_v the_o selfsame_a divine_a nature_n and_o essence_n entire_o communicate_v unto_o he_o which_o be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n without_o any_o alienation_n of_o it_o from_o they_o or_o multiplication_n of_o it_o in_o he_o and_o therefore_o the_o spirit_n do_v not_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o son_n as_o they_o stand_v in_o relative_n opposition_n but_o as_o they_o be_v essential_o and_o natural_o one_o and_o therefore_o the_o spirit_n do_v proceed_v from_o both_o equal_o aequè_fw-la primò_fw-la ac_fw-la per_fw-la se_fw-la as_o we_o use_v to_o say_v the_o spirit_n do_v receive_v from_o christ_n john_n 16._o 14_o 15._o but_o the_o spirit_n be_v god_n can_v not_o receive_v any_o thing_n but_o subsistence_n from_o the_o father_n or_o the_o son_n the_o spirit_n do_v glorify_v the_o son_n john_n 16._o 14._o no_o otherwise_o then_o the_o son_n as_o god_n do_v glorify_v the_o father_n because_o the_o son_n do_v receive_v his_o subsistence_n from_o the_o father_n as_o the_o spirit_n receive_v his_o subsistence_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n we_o must_v careful_o distinguish_v 1._o between_o the_o generation_n of_o the_o son_n and_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n though_o as_o we_o have_v show_v above_o the_o son_n do_v proceed_v if_o you_o take_v that_o word_n in_o a_o general_a notion_n the_o most_o exact_a critic_n will_v not_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o distinguish_v between_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d &_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d yet_o because_o we_o want_v word_n to_o express_v ourselves_o the_o reverend_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n think_v fit_a to_o appropriate_v procession_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o distinction_n sake_n and_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n god_n the_o father_n be_v never_o call_v the_o father_n of_o the_o h._n ghost_n nor_o be_v the_o h._n ghost_n call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n moreover_o the_o schoolman_n have_v give_v advantage_n to_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o trinity_n by_o discourse_v of_o divine_a procession_n at_o large_a in_o a_o general_a notion_n and_o for_o these_o reason_n i_o do_v endeavorto_fw-la distinguish_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o son_n from_o the_o spirit_n in_o this_o chapter_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o manner_n principle_n and_o order_n of_o procession_n 2._o we_o must_v careful_o distinguish_v between_o the_o eternal_a procession_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o temporal_a mission_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o the_o natural_a and_o eternal_a procession_n of_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v evince_v by_o the_o temporal_a mission_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o greek_a church_n do_v acknowledge_v 1._o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n and_o 2._o that_o he_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o from_o hence_o we_o infer_v 1._o that_o the_o son_n do_v not_o send_v the_o spirit_n by_o way_n of_o command_n as_o if_o he_o be_v great_a than_o the_o spirit_n 2._o that_o the_o son_n do_v not_o send_v the_o spirit_n by_o way_n of_o counsel_n and_o advice_n as_o if_o he_o be_v wise_a than_o the_o spirit_n and_o therefore_o the_o only_a reason_n why_o he_o do_v temporal_o send_v he_o be_v because_o the_o spirit_n do_v natural_o and_o eternal_o proceed_v from_o he_o and_o receive_v his_o glorious_a subsistence_n of_o he_o i_o may_v discourse_v more_o large_o upon_o this_o subject_n 13._o but_o i_o consider_v what_o athanasius_n damascen_n and_o divers_a other_o reverend_a divine_n who_o do_v long_o study_v these_o mysterious_a point_n have_v after_o many_o perplex_a debate_n acknowledge_v the_o son_n say_v they_o be_v beget_v and_o the_o spirit_n proceed_v this_o we_o be_v sure_a of_o because_o it_o be_v write_v if_o you_o inquire_v after_o the_o manner_n how_o the_o one_o be_v beget_v and_o how_o the_o other_o do_v proceed_v we_o answer_v that_o the_o son_n be_v begotten_a and_o the_o spirit_n do_v proceed_v eternal_o unchangeable_o unspeakable_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o god_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v say_v to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o son_n and_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o therefore_o do_v by_o consent_n of_o both_o testament_n declare_v that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n for_o instance_n the_o six_o of_o isaiah_n be_v speak_v of_o jehovah_n the_o god_n of_o israel_n who_o the_o mahometan_n
this_o time_n he_o see_v how_o easy_a it_o be_v to_o retort_v his_o own_o argument_n and_o if_o this_o retortion_n may_v help_v he_o to_o answer_v it_o i_o shall_v be_v glad_a that_o i_o have_v retort_v it_o his_o only_a answer_n ought_v to_o be_v i_o do_v believe_v that_o these_o three_o be_v three_o subsistent_n in_o the_o same_o single_a and_o infinite_a godhead_n phil._n 2._o 6._o joh._n 10._o 30._o 1_o joh._n 5._o 7._o heb_n 1._o 3._o vorstius_n valentinus_n gentilis_fw-la the_o transylvanian_n require_v some_o more_o curious_a answer_n but_o i_o shall_v be_v as_o plain_a and_o as_o brief_a as_o the_o weight_n and_o depth_n of_o this_o mystery_n will_v permit_v i_o to_o be_v i_o remember_v that_o aristotle_n say_v 1._o he_o do_v make_v a_o truth_n sufficient_o plain_a who_o bring_v such_o proof_n as_o the_o point_n in_o question_n will_v bear_v now_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o supernatural_a mystery_n can_v be_v expound_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o art_n martyr_n some_o return_n this_o answer_n that_o if_o by_o tres_fw-la res_fw-la three_o real_a thing_n you_o mean_v three_o person_n there_o be_v three_o real_a person_n in_o the_o godhead_n they_o be_v not_o make_v three_o by_o a_o fiction_n of_o reason_n they_o be_v declare_v three_o by_o the_o plain_a word_n of_o scripture_n but_o they_o be_v three_o before_o any_o scripture_n be_v write_v even_o from_o the_o day_n of_o eternity_n but_o if_o by_o tres_fw-la res_fw-la three_o real_a thing_n you_o mean_v three_o divine_a essence_n we_o do_v deny_v that_o three_o person_n be_v three_o divine_a essence_n or_o three_o god_n for_o these_o three_o person_n be_v but_o one_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o if_o you_o ask_v other_o distinguunt_fw-la they_o will_v say_v that_o these_o three_o be_v one_o be_v but_o they_o be_v three_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a manner_n of_o be_v subsist_v in_o the_o same_o godhead_n they_o have_v one_o essential_a subsistence_n say_v other_o but_o they_o have_v three_o incommunicable_a manner_n of_o subsist_v some_o express_v it_o thus_o these_o three_o be_v real_o distinct_a but_o not_o essential_o modally_n but_o not_o separable_o true_o but_o relative_o formal_o and_o yet_o but_o personal_o other_o that_o mean_v the_o same_o thing_n say_v they_o be_v distinguish_v secundum_fw-la esse_fw-la personale_fw-la non_fw-la secundum_fw-la esse_fw-la quidditativum_fw-la they_o then_o that_o say_v the_o person_n be_v real_o distinct_a shall_v explain_v themselves_o wary_o according_o to_o some_o of_o these_o or_o the_o like_a safe_a expression_n namely_o that_o by_o real_o 1_o they_o do_v not_o mean_v essential_o 2._o they_o do_v not_o mean_v separable_o 3._o that_o by_o real_o they_o do_v mean_a that_o the_o relation_n and_o personal_a property_n whereby_o the_o three_o person_n be_v know_v to_o be_v distinguish_v be_v real_a relation_n and_o real_a property_n and_o not_o fiction_n of_o reason_n the_o relation_n be_v opposite_a the_o property_n incommunicable_a and_o much_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o personal_a action_n to_o the_o selfsame_o purpose_n but_o i_o must_v hasten_v some_o do_v adventure_n to_o call_v this_o distinction_n natural_a calovium_n but_o that_o be_v a_o very_a dangerous_a expression_n it_o must_v not_o pass_v without_o some_o favourable_a grain_n of_o allowance_n nor_o can_v it_o then_o pass_v unless_o it_o be_v season_v with_o some_o grain_n of_o salt_n and_o be_v mollify_v with_o some_o fair_a and_o orthodox_n interpretation_n by_o natural_a distinction_n they_o mean_v relative_n because_o say_v they_o the_o relation_n which_o be_v between_o these_o uncreated_a person_n be_v not_o only_o real_a but_o natural_a also_o the_o relation_n between_o god_n the_o father_n and_o his_o own_o natural_a son_n be_v a_o natural_a relation_n ground_v upon_o a_o natural_a and_o personal_a action_n namely_o the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o the_o son_n the_o greek_a father_n speak_v much_o of_o the_o familiar_a and_o proper_a emphasis_n of_o this_o natural_a relation_n between_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n by_o natural_a distinction_n than_o they_o do_v not_o mean_v a_o essential_a distinction_n as_o if_o the_o three_o uncreated_a person_n do_v differ_v in_o nature_n but_o natural_a in_o that_o sound_n and_o orthodox_n sense_n recite_v above_o i_o have_v rather_o leave_v my_o margin_n to_o relate_v the_o curiosity_n of_o other_o then_o to_o perplex_v a_o mere_a english_a reader_n with_o any_o scholastical_a difficulty_n i_o have_v say_v enough_o for_o the_o explication_n of_o those_o term_n which_o be_v most_o usual_a and_o yet_o likely_a to_o give_v offence_n to_o such_o as_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o importance_n of_o they_o i_o shall_v therefore_o conclude_v this_o point_n with_o fulgentius_n his_o commentary_n which_o be_v a_o excellent_a contexture_n of_o some_o pertinent_a scripture_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o point_n donatum_fw-la when_o you_o read_v say_v he_o of_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n understand_v that_o there_o be_v three_o person_n of_o one_o essence_n omnipotence_n eternity_n etc._n etc._n for_o our_o saviour_n say_v i_o be_o not_o alone_a but_o i_o and_o the_o father_n that_o send_v i_o joh._n 8_o 16._o and_o concern_v the_o spirit_n he_o say_v and_o i_o will_v pray_v the_o father_n and_o he_o will_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n even_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n joh._n 14._o 16_o 17._o moreover_o he_o command_v his_o apostle_n to_o baptize_v all_o nation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o equality_n of_o the_o person_n prove_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o nature_n phil._n 2._o 6._o john_n 5._o 18._o and_o from_o hence_o he_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v three_o person_n and_o not_o three_o nature_n in_o the_o bless_a trinity_n from_o what_o have_v be_v say_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o these_o three_o uncreated_a person_n be_v true_o distinguish_v but_o they_o can_v be_v divide_v and_o it_o be_v not_o so_o safe_a to_o express_v the_o distinction_n of_o uncreated_a person_n by_o term_n of_o art_n they_o who_o say_v the_o distinction_n be_v natural_a 9_o real_a absolute_a or_o relative_n do_v deny_v that_o the_o distinction_n be_v essential_a or_o that_o the_o person_n be_v separable_a they_o who_o speak_v most_o tender_o say_v it_o be_v modall_n formal_n personal_a they_o who_o say_v it_o be_v natural_a in_o respect_n of_o personal_a relation_n and_o natural_a action_n confess_v that_o it_o be_v supernatural_a and_o mysterious_a because_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n be_v unquestionable_a the_o trinity_n of_o person_n subsist_v in_o that_o godhead_n admirable_a both_o put_v together_o undeniable_a and_o inexplicable_a and_o yet_o most_o necessary_o and_o high_o credible_a they_o who_o say_v the_o person_n be_v formal_o distinct_a do_v mean_a that_o they_o be_v true_o distinct_a they_o do_v not_o conceive_v that_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o uncreated_a person_n be_v ground_v upon_o a_o mere_a fiction_n of_o reason_n or_o upon_o the_o weakness_n of_o our_o apprehension_n as_o if_o we_o do_v conceive_v one_o person_n to_o be_v three_o person_n because_o he_o be_v call_v by_o three_o name_n as_o praxea_n sabellius_n and_o some_o other_o dream_v nor_o do_v they_o believe_v that_o this_o distinction_n of_o these_o three_o uncreated_a person_n be_v only_o ground_v upon_o the_o phrase_n of_o scripture_n but_o they_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v a_o true_a and_o proper_a not_o a_o improper_a and_o figurative_a distinction_n between_o these_o uncreated_a person_n nay_o they_o all_o confess_v that_o this_o true_a and_o proper_a distinction_n be_v a_o eternal_a distinction_n it_o be_v from_o and_o it_o will_v last_v to_o all_o eternity_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o ground_v only_o upon_o some_o office_n and_o external_a dispensation_n which_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o creature_n chap._n viii_o the_o grand_a mystery_n of_o three_o divine_a and_o coessential_a subsistent_n in_o the_o single_a godhead_n be_v not_o problematicall_a but_o fundamental_a all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a and_o precious_a truth_n and_o every_o man_n be_v oblige_v to_o receive_v believe_v and_o embrace_v every_o truth_n make_v know_v to_o he_o in_o and_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n because_o all_o truth_n contain_v in_o scripture_n be_v of_o equal_a credit_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o revealer_n but_o all_o truth_n be_v not_o of_o equal_a necessity_n weight_n and_o importance_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o nature_n and_o matter_n of_o the_o point_v reveal_v there_o be_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o the_o nature_n matter_n weight_n and_o importance_n of_o these_o two_o proposition_n 1._o paul_n leave_v his_o cloak_n book_n and_o parchment_n at_o troas_n 2_o tim._n 4._o 13._o 2._o jesus_n christ_n be_v god_n and_o man_n the_o only_a mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n the_o only_a and_o all-sufficient_a saviour_n of_o
maintain_n of_o save_a communion_n with_o god_n 1._o that_o god_n be_v for_o he_o who_o come_v unto_o god_n must_v believe_v that_o god_n be_v heb._n 11._o 6._o 2._o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n deut._n 6._o 4._o 3._o that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v this_o one_o god_n because_o they_o be_v all_o three_o coessential_a subsistent_n in_o this_o most_o single_a godhead_n 1_o cor._n 8._o 5._o 6._o phi._n 2._o 6._o 1_o io_n 5._o 7_o joh._n 10._o 30._o mat._n 3._o 16_o 17._o mat._n 28._o 19_o act._n 5._o 4._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 6._o 11._o 2_o cor._n 13._o 14._o joh._n 15._o â6_n rev._n 1._o 4._o 5._o reverend_a calvin_n be_v not_o so_o morose_a and_o austere_a in_o this_o point_n as_o to_o contend_v about_o unnecessary_a word_n 36._o or_o curious_a phrase_n so_o there_o be_v such_o word_n use_v as_o do_v fit_o and_o full_o express_v the_o whole_a mystery_n of_o faith_n in_o this_o weighty_a point_n and_o sufficient_o refute_v the_o damnable_a error_n of_o arrius_n and_o sabellius_n if_o man_n will_v but_o acknowledge_v 1._o that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n be_v one_o god_n and_o the_o self_n same_o god_n 2._o that_o the_o son_n be_v not_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o spirit_n the_o son_n but_o that_o these_o three_o be_v distinguish_v by_o special_a relation_n incommunicable_a and_o unchangeable_a property_n so_o that_o there_o be_v a_o trinity_n of_o coessential_a subsistent_n in_o the_o selfsame_o divine_a essence_n we_o be_v all_o agree_v arrius_n will_v acknowledge_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n 25._o buâ_n not_o consubstantial_a or_o coessential_a with_o his_o father_n for_o he_o do_v deny_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o same_o god_n with_o his_o father_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o socinian_o will_v say_v that_o they_o acknowledge_v and_o maintain_v the_o true_a divinity_n of_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n but_o they_o do_v deny_v that_o the_o son_n and_o spirit_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n with_o the_o father_n and_o affirm_v that_o the_o reform_a church_n who_o believe_v that_o all_o three_o person_n have_v the_o self_n same_o godhead_n do_v ascribe_v a_o false_a and_o imaginary_a godhead_n to_o the_o son_n and_o spirit_n which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v no_o where_o acknowledge_v or_o declare_v and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a reason_n why_o the_o orthodox_n doctor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v so_o unanimous_a especial_o of_o late_a year_n in_o maintain_v this_o proposition_n pater_fw-la filius_fw-la &_o spiritus_fw-la sanctus_n sunt_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o father_n son_n &_o holy_a spirit_n be_v one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a god_n on_o the_o other_o side_n sabellius_n acknowledge_v sonare_fw-la that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v one_o god_n but_o if_o you_o say_v that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v three_o different_a subsistent_n than_o he_o cry_v out_o as_o m._n fry_n do_v that_o you_o acknowledge_v three_o god_n the_o best_a way_n to_o avoid_v these_o say_v judicious_a calvin_n be_v to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o essence_n of_o god_n gomarum_fw-la for_o we_o must_v needs_o acknowledge_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n because_o we_o read_v that_o the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n be_v one_o and_o we_o must_v acknowledge_v the_o trinity_n of_o these_o coessential_a subsistent_n or_o person_n because_o we_o read_v that_o they_o be_v three_o now_o the_o trinity_n and_o unity_n make_v a_o coessential_a trinunity_n &_o if_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o trinity_n of_o the_o subsistent_n or_o person_n be_v acknowledge_v we_o shall_v not_o wrangle_v about_o curious_a phrase_n or_o unnecessary_a word_n the_o most_o judicious_a and_o moderate_a man_n among_o the_o orthodox_n doctor_n of_o the_o church_n agree_v in_o this_o dury_n the_o learned_a and_o reverend_a doctor_n davenant_n in_o his_o judicious_a exhortation_n to_o brotherly_a communion_n between_o the_o protestant_a church_n teach_v we_o how_o to_o distinguish_v between_o point_n that_o be_v fundamental_a and_o problem_n or_o proposition_n that_o be_v not_o fundamental_a and_o when_o he_o come_v to_o reckon_v up_o fundamental_o he_o instance_n in_o the_o trinity_n and_o express_v himself_o after_o this_o manner_n that_o god_n be_v one_o in_o essence_n three_o in_o person_n distinguish_v betwixt_o themselves_o that_o the_o son_n be_v beget_v of_o the_o father_n that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n that_o these_o three_o person_n be_v coeternal_a and_o coequal_a all_o these_o say_v he_o be_v deserve_o determine_v and_o rank_v among_o the_o fundamental_a article_n now_o if_o any_o shall_v contend_v that_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v dispute_v of_o the_o schoolman_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v and_o beget_v be_v also_o fundamental_a and_o necessary_a to_o be_v determine_v on_o one_o side_n very_o he_o by_o this_o his_o rash_a judgement_n will_v gain_v no_o favour_n with_o christ._n but_o it_o be_v object_v by_o some_o who_o do_v acknowledge_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n that_o they_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o close_v with_o we_o when_o we_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v coessential_a with_o god_n his_o eternal_a father_n because_o we_o do_v impose_v a_o new_a word_n upon_o they_o and_o so_o make_v a_o new_a fundamental_a of_o our_o own_o inventition_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o if_o we_o make_v a_o old_a truth_n plain_a by_o a_o new_a word_n they_o ought_v to_o forgive_v we_o that_o injury_n 2._o we_o explain_v our_o new_a term_n 3._o we_o save_v they_o the_o trouble_n of_o a_o artificial_a and_o tedious_a deduction_n for_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o do_v but_o understand_v the_o word_n they_o must_v necessary_o embrace_v the_o sense_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o though_o the_o word_n seem_v new_a to_o they_o yet_o the_o doctrine_n be_v old_a for_o if_o the_o person_n be_v of_o a_o different_a divine_a essence_n than_o there_o will_v be_v more_o god_n then_o one_o 4._o we_o do_v hereby_o secure_v they_o against_o the_o subtlety_n of_o pernicious_a heretic_n who_o endeavour_v to_o seduce_v they_o into_o damnable_a heresy_n for_o if_o the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n have_v not_o the_o same_o divine_a essence_n then_o either_o there_o will_v be_v more_o god_n then_o one_o or_o else_o the_o son_n and_o spirit_n be_v no_o god_n at_o all_o but_o such_o petty_a inferior_a god_n as_o the_o socinian_o make_v they_o 5._o no_o man_n that_o have_v a_o sound_a brain_n and_o a_o single_a eye_n can_v conceive_v that_o there_o be_v divers_a god_n in_o the_o same_o essence_n and_o therefore_o the_o expression_n be_v necessary_a and_o safe_a the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n be_v three_o coesential_a subsistent_n in_o the_o same_o single_a godhead_n they_o be_v all_o three_o one_o and_o the_o self-same_a god_n who_o be_v god_n by_o nature_n the_o only_a true_a god_n bless_v for_o ever_o in_o this_o faith_n we_o will_v live_v and_o in_o this_o we_o will_v die_v as_o it_o become_v orthodox_n christian_n who_o be_v baptise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n chap._n ix_o this_o grand_a mystery_n of_o faith_n have_v a_o effectual_a influence_n into_o the_o practical_a mystery_n of_o godliness_n and_o power_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v the_o great_a design_n and_o faithful_a endeavour_n of_o sincere_a christian_n to_o attain_v unto_o all_o riches_n of_o the_o full_a assurance_n of_o understanding_n to_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o christ_n colos._n 2._o 2._o they_o who_o have_v but_o a_o form_n of_o godliness_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o kind_n of_o paint_a powerlesse_a shadow_n of_o piety_n may_v look_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n as_o a_o school-point_n a_o mere_a speculative_a doctrine_n which_o man_n receive_v by_o tradition_n from_o their_o forefather_n but_o they_o who_o live_v in_o the_o spirit_n and_o walk_v in_o the_o spirit_n gal._n 5._o 25._o have_v a_o life_n that_o be_v hide_v with_o christ_n in_o god_n colos_n 3._o 3._o hide_v from_o formal_a man_n as_o colour_n be_v hide_v from_o blind_a man_n and_o these_o spiritual_a christian_n do_v account_v the_o love_n of_o the_o father_n 14._o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v their_o heaven_n upon_o earth_n they_o receive_v jesus_n christ_n so_o as_o to_o live_v by_o he_o walk_v in_o he_o and_o live_v to_o he_o colos._n 2._o 6._o phil._n 1._o 21_o 1_o joh._n 5._o 12_o 2_o cor._n 5._o 15._o what_o be_v a_o godly_a life_n but_o a_o life_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n of_o joy_n and_o thankfulness_n of_o self-denial_n and_o devotion_n of_o patience_n and_o obedience_n hope_v
13_o 14_o 16_o here_o be_v the_o freewill_n of_o the_o elect_n but_o bless_v be_v the_o god_n and_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v bless_v we_o with_o all_o spiritual_a blessing_n in_o heavenly_a place_n in_o christ_n according_a as_o he_o have_v ver_fw-la choose_v we_o in_o he_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o unblameable_a before_o he_o in_o love_n 12._o etc._n etc._n ephes._n 1._o 3_o 4_o 5._o 16._o our_o thankfulness_n shall_v be_v show_v for_o this_o free_a grace_n 9_o to_o all_o three_o person_n in_o our_o thanksgiving_n believe_v obeve_a as_o be_v clear_a from_o these_o place_n and_o so_o our_o prayer_n shall_v be_v answerable_a to_o our_o faith_n love_n and_o thankfulness_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o in_o the_o very_a same_o chapter_n the_o apostle_n make_v his_o address_n after_o this_o model_n that_o the_o god_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o father_n of_o glory_n may_v give_v unto_o you_o the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o revelation_n in_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o christ_n ephes._n 1._o 17._o and_o so_o 2_o thes._n 2_o 16._o rev._n 1._o 4_o 5._o 2_o cor._n 13._o 14._o many_o other_o place_n may_v be_v urge_v which_o contain_v the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n worship_n and_o obedience_n and_o if_o christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n be_v not_o always_o name_v in_o they_o yet_o the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n the_o gift_n grace_n fruit_n comfort_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v name_v do_v direct_v we_o to_o both_o moreover_o when_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v use_v 7._o indefinite_o all_o three_o person_n must_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v comprehend_v in_o that_o essential_a title_n because_o they_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n final_o one_o person_n do_v subsist_v in_o another_o and_o the_o same_o honour_n be_v due_a to_o all_o three_o because_o all_o three_o have_v the_o same_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v single_a because_o infinite_a and_o therefore_o there_o be_v enough_o discover_v to_o prevent_v all_o scruple_n in_o the_o upright-hearted_n and_o cavil_n in_o the_o contrary-minded_n read_v the_o three_o and_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n and_o there_o you_o will_v see_v a_o very_a pregnant_a proof_n of_o this_o point_n effectus_fw-la put_v on_o therefore_o as_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n holy_a and_o belove_a bowel_n of_o mercy_n kindness_n humbleness_n of_o mind_n above_o all_o these_o thing_n put_v on_o charity_n let_v the_o peace_n of_o god_n rule_n in_o your_o heart_n do_v all_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n give_v thanks_o to_o god_n and_o the_o father_n by_o he_o what_o ever_o you_o do_v do_v it_o hearty_o as_o to_o the_o lord_n and_o then_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o their_o request_n be_v that_o they_o may_v stand_v perfect_a and_o complete_a in_o all_o the_o will_n of_o god_n this_o take_v in_o the_o full_a scope_n of_o law_n and_o gospel_n whatever_o belong_v to_o faith_n worship_n or_o obedience_n whatever_o be_v just_a and_o equal_a or_o well-pleasing_a unto_o god_n col._n 3._o 20._o col._n 4._o 1._o and_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n run_v parallel_v with_o this_o to_o the_o colossian_n eulgentius_fw-la you_o be_v elect_v and_o therefore_o you_o must_v be_v holy_a before_o all_o three_o coessential_a person_n by_o who_o you_o be_v elect_v you_o must_v believe_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n as_o the_o truth_n be_v in_o jesus_n that_o you_o may_v be_v seal_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o fill_v with_o all_o the_o fullness_n of_o god_n you_o must_v bow_v your_o knee_n to_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n you_o must_v study_v the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n you_o must_v keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n you_o must_v grow_v up_o into_o christ_n in_o all_o thing_n you_o must_v not_o grieve_v the_o holy_a spirit_n whereby_o you_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n but_o maintain_v a_o fruitful_a fellowship_n with_o god_n in_o christ_n by_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v in_o all_o goodness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n you_o must_v be_v fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n give_v thanks_o always_o for_o all_o thing_n unto_o god_n and_o the_o father_n in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n you_o must_v do_v whatsoever_o be_v right_a or_o equal_a ephes._n 6._o 1._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d this_o be_v right_n just_a and_o equal_a put_v on_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n take_v the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o shield_n of_o faith_n pray_v always_o with_o all_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n in_o the_o spirit_n peace_n be_v to_o the_o brethren_n and_o love_n with_o faith_n from_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n grace_n be_v with_o all_o they_o that_o love_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o sincerity_n i_o need_v make_v no_o inference_n the_o word_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o they_o prove_v the_o point_n in_o terminis_fw-la terminantibus_fw-la as_o we_o use_v to_o say_v consider_v the_o discourse_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n roman_n where_o the_o apostle_n have_v even_o lose_v his_o reader_n in_o the_o depth_n of_o this_o mystery_n of_o the_o eternal_a counsel_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n aug._n he_o put_v this_o question_n to_o all_o the_o busy_a disputant_n who_o have_v know_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o lord_n or_o who_o have_v be_v his_o counsellor_n and_o conclude_v that_o of_o he_o and_o through_o he_o and_o to_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n to_o who_o be_v glory_n for_o ever_o amen_n we_o have_v mercy_n from_o he_o faith_n and_o repentance_n from_o he_o by_o a_o effectual_a vocation_n according_a to_o his_o purpose_n of_o election_n rom._n 8_o 28_o 29._o rom._n 9_o 11._o 15._o 16._o 18_o 23_o 24_o 29_o 30._o rom._n 10._o 20._o rom._n 11._o 2_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 29_o 30_o 32._o 36._o we_o have_v mercy_n grace_n and_o glory_n from_o all_o three_o and_o therefore_o all_o honour_n and_o glory_n be_v to_o all_o three_o for_o ever_o amen_n and_o the_o apostle_n do_v beseech_v the_o god_n of_o patience_n and_o consolation_n the_o god_n of_o hope_n and_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n 105._o to_o fill_v they_o with_o all_o joy_n and_o peace_n in_o believe_v that_o they_o may_v abound_v in_o hope_n through_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n pros._n who_o be_v the_o god_n of_o hope_n comfort_n and_o peace_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n do_v consist_v in_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o 9_o holy_a ghost_n rom._n 14._o 17._o and_o if_o we_o serve_v christ_n who_o be_v god_n bless_v for_o ever_o rom._n 9_o 5._o in_o these_o thing_n we_o shall_v be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o approve_v of_o man_n rom._n 14._o 18._o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o we_o be_v mark_n thessalonian_n because_o fruit_n of_o our_o election_n by_o god_n the_o apostle_n write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o thessalonian_n which_o be_v in_o god_n the_o father_n and_o in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n beg_v grace_n and_o peace_n for_o they_o from_o god_n our_o father_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n liberari_fw-la remember_v their_o work_n of_o faith_n labour_n of_o love_n and_o patience_n of_o hope_n in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o our_o father_n and_o then_o conclude_v their_o election_n of_o god_n because_o the_o gospel_n come_v to_o they_o in_o power_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o they_o receive_v the_o word_n in_o much_o affliction_n with_o joy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o apostle_n exhort_v they_o in_o every_o thing_n to_o give_v thanks_o because_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o bid_v they_o beware_v of_o quench_v the_o spirit_n and_o beseech_v the_o spirit_n who_o be_v undeniable_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n and_o by_o special_a office_n our_o sanctifier_n and_o comforter_n to_o sanctfy_v we_o whole_o the_o very_a god_n of_o peace_n sanctify_v you_o whole_o etc._n etc._n and_o the_o apostle_n discourse_n in_o like_a manner_n in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n god_n say_v he_o timothy_n have_v give_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o power_n of_o love_n and_o of_o a_o sound_a mind_n save_v we_o and_o call_v we_o with_o a_o holy_a call_n according_a to_o his_o own_o purpose_n and_o grace_n 9_o which_o be_v give_v we_o in_o christ_n jesus_n before_o the_o world_n begin_v and_o tell_v we_o that_o every_o one_o who_o do_v pretend_v to_o be_v elect_v largiretur_fw-la or_o presume_v to_o call_v upon_o christ_n and_o claim_v a_o interest_n in_o he_o must_v depart_v from_o iniquity_n be_v sanctify_v
personam_fw-la extra_fw-la essentiam_fw-la quia_fw-la essentia_fw-la infinita_fw-la extra_fw-la se_fw-la fundi_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la potest_fw-la tota_n natura_fw-la divina_fw-la est_fw-la in_o tribus_fw-la personis_fw-la tota_fw-la in_o singulis_fw-la singularissime_fw-la unica_fw-la servatis_fw-la tum_fw-la essentialibus_fw-la essentiae_fw-la tum_fw-la relativis_fw-la personarum_fw-la in_o unitate_fw-la essentiae_fw-la proprietatibus_fw-la proprietatibus_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d propter_fw-la in_o confusam_fw-la in_o sâ_n ãâã_d comprehensionem_fw-la &_o present_v ãâ¦ã_z circum_fw-la incessionem_fw-la ut_fw-la satis_fw-la barbare_v loquuntur_fw-la vide_fw-la gomari_fw-la diatribe_v de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la inconfuse_v uniuntâr_n indivise_v discernuntur_fw-la the_o divin_fw-fr person_n subsist_v in_o one_o another_o another_o vide_fw-la âamascen_n lib._n 1._o orth._n fid_fw-we cap_n 19_o vide_fw-la ãâã_d in_o scent_n do_v 19_o q._n 2._o thom_n p._n 1._o q._n 42._o atâ_n 5._o john_n 14._o 10_o 11._o the_o nature_n and_o person_n of_o god_n the_o father_n be_v in_o christ._n john_n 10._o open_v john_n 10._o 38._o john_n 10._o from_o the_o â5_n v_o to_o the_o 39_o john_n 8_o 16._o 18_o 29._o john_n 14._o 10_o 11_o 21._o john_n 10_o 38_o john_n 16_o 27._o 30._o 32._o joh._n 17_o 21_o the_o six_o difference_n between_o create_v &_o uncreated_a person_n person_n ut_fw-la autem_fw-la difficillimum_fw-la sit_fw-la hoc_fw-la credere_fw-la &_o naturam_fw-la longè_fw-la exâperat_fw-la ita_fw-la necessarium_fw-la est_fw-la adeo_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la ut_fw-la sine_fw-la fide_fw-la illâ_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la salus_fw-la hinc_fw-la sequitur_fw-la quòd_fw-la cum_fw-la à _fw-la naturâ_fw-la alienum_fw-la sit_fw-la &_o tamen_fw-la necessarium_fw-la oportere_fw-la nos_fw-la ex_fw-la naturâ_fw-la exire_fw-la &_o supra_fw-la na_fw-la turam_fw-la efferri_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la ut_fw-la videamus_fw-la deum_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la habitantem_fw-la rolloc_n con_fw-la in_o johan._n 14._o v_o 10_o 11_o 11_o deus_fw-la est_fw-la ubique_fw-la totus_fw-la in_o seipso_fw-la âuommodo_fw-la ubique_fw-la si_fw-la in_o seipso_fw-la ubique_fw-la quia_fw-la nusquam_fw-la est_fw-la absens_fw-la in_fw-la seipso_fw-la autem_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la continetur_fw-la ab_fw-la eye_n quibus_fw-la est_fw-la praesens_fw-la anqââan_fw-la sine_fw-la eye_v esse_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la august_n epist._n 57_o ad_fw-la daâdanum_n daâdanum_n qui_fw-la ubi_fw-la que_fw-la est_fw-la in_o seipso_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o seipso_fw-la est_fw-la in_fw-la omnibus_fw-la sibi_fw-la coessentialibus_fw-la necessario_fw-la est_fw-la volens_fw-la tamen_fw-la gaudensque_fw-la gaudensque_fw-la naturae_fw-la est_fw-la in_o tribus_fw-la personis_fw-la non_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d tantùm_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d per_fw-la sonaâum_fw-la non_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d quasi_fw-la vas_fw-la esset_fw-la in_o vaâse_n sed_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d neinaâqualitas_fw-la inveheretur_fw-la inveheretur_fw-la spiritus_fw-la dei_fw-la dicitur_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o deo_fw-la 1_o cor._n 2._o 11._o qui_fw-la tamen_fw-la est_fw-la deus_fw-la ipse_fw-la 1_o cor._n 6._o 20._o nempe_fw-la ad_fw-la intimam_fw-la inexistentiam_fw-la trium_fw-la personarum_fw-la in_o seipsis_fw-la exprimendam_fw-la d._n wallaeus_n de_fw-fr simplicitate_fw-la dei_fw-la pag_n 128._o 128._o in_o processionibus_fw-la divinis_fw-la nulla_fw-la est_fw-la partitio_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d well_fw-mi ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d quibus_fw-la tribus_fw-la modis_fw-la res_fw-la creatae_fw-la producuntur_fw-la quia_fw-la eadem_fw-la natura_fw-la singularis_fw-la simplex_fw-la indivisibilis_fw-la &_o infinita_fw-la sine_fw-la divisione_n vel_fw-la multiplicatione_n communicatur_fw-la communicatur_fw-la ãâ¦ã_z seipâââbique_fw-la est_fw-la deus_fw-la noster_fw-la omnipraesentissimus_fw-la totus_fw-la in_o mundo_fw-la totùs_fw-la extra_fw-la mundum_fw-la totus_fw-la super_fw-la mundum_fw-la totus_fw-la &_o unus_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la &_o singulis_fw-la nusquam_fw-la inclusâs_fw-la nusquam_fw-la exclusus_fw-la ubique_fw-la immensus_fw-la non_fw-la per_fw-la essentiae_fw-la multiplicationem_fw-la extensionem_fw-la aut_fw-la divisionem_fw-la sed_fw-la per_fw-la infinitatem_fw-la simplicissimam_fw-la simplicissimam_fw-la ante_fw-la omne_fw-la deus_fw-la erat_fw-la solus_fw-la ipse_fw-la sibi_fw-la &_o loâus_fw-la &_o muâdus_fw-la &_o omniâ_n uti_fw-la tertulliââus_fw-la contra_fw-la ââax_fw-la ââax_fw-la essentia_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la miscetur_fw-la cuâsplen_n didis_fw-la nâc_fw-la a_o sordidis_fw-la contaminatur_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o utero_fw-la virgin_n fuit_fw-la hypostatice_fw-la unita_fw-la cum_fw-la carne_fw-la nostrâ_fw-la sine_fw-la ullâ_fw-la commixâione_fw-la confusione_n contaminâtione_n vel_fw-la diminutione_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d si_fw-mi homo_fw-la tantummodo_fw-la christus_fw-la quomodo_fw-la adest_fw-la ubique_fw-la invocatus_fw-la cum_fw-la haec_fw-la hominis_fw-la natura_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la sed_fw-la dei_fw-la ut_fw-la adesse_fw-la omni_fw-la loco_fw-la possit_fw-la tertulian_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d anastasius_n antiochenus_fw-la angeli_fw-la sunt_fw-la substantiae_fw-la spirituales_fw-la separaim_n &_o per_fw-la se_fw-la subsistentes_fw-la &_o proinde_fw-la sunt_fw-la alicubi_fw-la definitive_a definitive_a tres_fw-fr personae_fw-la sunt_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d quia_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d &_o non_fw-la tantum_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d tres_fw-fr homines_fw-la quibus_fw-la una_fw-la competit_fw-la definitio_fw-la sunt_fw-la tantum_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d quia_fw-la natura_fw-la eorum_fw-la est_fw-la finita_fw-la &_o divisa_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la tota_fw-la estenâia_fw-la patris_fw-la creaâi_fw-la sed_fw-la parâ_n tantum_fw-la filio_fw-la communicatur_fw-la &_o hypostasis_n eorum_fw-la sunt_fw-la separatae_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la itaque_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la naturae_fw-la indivisae_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la naturae_fw-la singularis_fw-la &_o proinde_fw-la licèt_fw-la communi_fw-la ratione_fw-la homines_fw-la dicantur_fw-la tamen_fw-la reipsa_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la unus_fw-la homo_fw-la personae_fw-la autem_fw-la divinae_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d sunt_fw-la propter_fw-la unius_fw-la communis_fw-la &_o tamen_fw-la singâlaris_fw-la naturae_fw-la identi_fw-la tatem_fw-la quam_fw-la simul_fw-la &_o pariter_fw-la &_o totam_fw-la habent_fw-la pater_fw-la filius_fw-la &_o spiritus_fw-la sanctus_n sanctus_n immensa_fw-la dei_fw-la prae_fw-la sentia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la accidââs_fw-la vel_fw-la modus_fw-la essentiae_fw-la ejus_fw-la sed_fw-la ipsamet_fw-la essentia_fw-la deus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la alicubi_fw-la sed_fw-la ubique_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la alicubi_fw-la est_fw-la in_o ubi_fw-la definitiâo_fw-la vide_fw-la aug._n qu._n lib._n 83._o qu._n 20._o &_o lib._n 8._o geres_n ad_fw-la lit_fw-fr cap._n 26._o chrysost._n homiâ_n 5._o ad_fw-la coloss._n dan._n asâen_o nazian_n orat_fw-la 34._o basiâ_n hom._n 16._o hieronym_n in_o isa._n 66._o 66._o qui_fw-la est_fw-la ubique_fw-la repletive_a non_fw-la est_fw-la alicubi_fw-la definitive_a vide_fw-la scalig._n exercit._fw-la 159._o §._o 5._o the_o 7_o difference_n difference_n personae_fw-la creatae_fw-la differunt_fw-la intelligentia_fw-la voluntate_fw-la potentiâ_fw-la essentiâ_fw-la operatione_n locorum_fw-la intervallis_fw-la imo_fw-la propriâ_fw-la accidentium_fw-la congerie_n vide_fw-la gomarum_fw-la de_fw-la trinitate_fw-la tom._n 3._o pag._n 24._o 24._o personae_fw-la divinae_fw-la non_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la relativae_fw-la propter_fw-la essentias_fw-la relativas_fw-la sed_fw-la propter_fw-la modos_fw-la sive_fw-la proprietates_fw-la relativas_fw-la quae_fw-la quidem_fw-la proprietates_fw-la non_fw-la differunt_fw-la realiter_fw-la essentialiter_fw-la imo_fw-la nec_fw-la realiter_fw-la separabiliter_fw-la ab_fw-la essentiâ_fw-la divinâ_fw-la personae_fw-la autem_fw-la divinae_fw-la sunt_fw-la extra_fw-la omne_fw-la genus_fw-la omnemque_fw-la dependentiam_fw-la dependentiam_fw-la vide_fw-la metaphys_n fonsec_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 15._o sect._n 7._o 7._o vide_fw-la scotum_n estium_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o 1._o send_v do_v 30._o omnâs_o ãâ¦ã_z respectiva_fw-la concipitur_fw-la in_o deo_fw-la ad_fw-la creaturam_fw-la est_fw-la tantùm_fw-la secundum_fw-la rationem_fw-la &_o modum_fw-la concipiendi_fw-la nostrum_fw-la quia_fw-la divina_fw-la natura_fw-la est_fw-la absoluta_fw-la in_o se_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la omni_fw-la ordine_fw-la creaturarum_fw-la independens_fw-la sive_fw-la creaturae_fw-la existunt_fw-la sive_fw-la non_fw-la vide_fw-la suarez_n disp._n 47._o sect._n 15._o num_fw-la 25._o the_o eight_o difference_n betwâene_v create_v &_o uncreated_a person_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o their_o different_a duration_n duration_n aecernitas_fw-la proprie_fw-la dicta_fw-la est_fw-la increata_fw-la duratio_fw-la itaque_fw-la angelorum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la vera_fw-la aeternitas_fw-la aeternum_fw-la dicitur_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la extra_fw-la terminum_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la se_fw-la incapax_fw-la termini_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o sua_fw-la intrinsecaratione_fw-la infinitatem_fw-la in_o durando_fw-la includit_fw-la angel_n be_v not_o coaeternall_a with_o god_n god_n aliud_fw-la est_fw-la esse_fw-la aeternum_fw-la aliud_fw-la sempiternum_fw-la quia_fw-la omne_fw-la aeternum_fw-la est_fw-la immutabile_fw-la richard_n victor_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la trinitate_fw-la c._n 4._o ratio_fw-la aeternitatis_fw-la consequitur_fw-la immutabilitatem_fw-la sicut_fw-la ratio_fw-la temporis_fw-la motum_fw-la th._n p._n 1._o qu._n 10._o art_n 2._o c._n c._n deus_fw-la est_fw-la aeternus_fw-la imo_fw-la &_o sua_fw-la aeternitas_fw-la deus_fw-la enim_fw-la est_fw-la infinita_fw-la perfectio_fw-la &_o proinde_fw-la simul_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la se_fw-la atque_fw-la immutabiliter_fw-la habet_fw-la totam_fw-la perfectionem_fw-la svam_fw-la ratione_fw-la cujus_fw-la ex_fw-la se_fw-la sit_fw-la sufficiens_fw-la ad_fw-la coexistendum_fw-la omni_fw-la durationi_fw-la quantacunque_fw-la illa_fw-la sit_fw-la &_o proinde_fw-la sicut_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la sua_fw-la essentia_fw-la &_o perfectio_fw-la ita_fw-la est_fw-la sua_fw-la aeternitat_fw-la vide_fw-la suarez_n metaph_n disp_n 50._o sect._n 4._o th._n p._n 1._o qu._n
exclude_v false_a god_n but_o i_o say_v it_o do_v also_o deny_v jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v different_a god_n other_o god_n from_o god_n the_o father_n because_o they_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n with_o the_o father_n as_o be_v evident_a in_o those_o two_o place_n 1_o john_n 5._o 7._o 20._o cite_v before_o those_o learned_a man_n do_v well_o to_o exclude_v false_a god_n the_o socinian_o do_v ill_a to_o exclude_v the_o son_n and_o spirit_n who_o be_v the_o same_o god_n with_o the_o father_n only_a do_v exclude_v every_o false_a god_n but_o the_o son_n and_o spirit_n be_v as_o the_o father_n be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n bless_v for_o ever_o the_o term_n only_a do_v not_o exclude_v any_o divine_a person_n but_o it_o do_v exclude_v all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o the_o creature_n 7._o because_o every_o divine_a person_n have_v the_o same_o divine_a nature_n but_o no_o creature_n be_v capable_a of_o the_o divine_a nature_n unless_o we_o do_v understand_v it_o as_o 2_o pet._n 1._o 4._o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o image_n of_o god_n or_o have_v such_o a_o interest_n in_o the_o divine_a attribute_n that_o god_n will_v exercise_v and_o put_v forth_o his_o wisdom_n power_n and_o all_o for_o their_o everlasting_a good_a and_o be_v himself_o their_o all_o sufficient_a reward_n portion_n and_o objective_a happiness_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o term_n only_a and_o true_a be_v both_o apply_v to_o the_o same_o part_n of_o the_o proposition_n namely_o to_o the_o predicate_v alone_o 5._o this_o be_v life_n eternal_a to_o know_v thou_o but_o the_o text_n say_v this_o be_v life_n eternal_a to_o know_v jesus_n christ_n also_o that_o be_v this_o be_v the_o way_n and_o mean_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o this_o be_v the_o fide_fw-la begin_n of_o eternal_a life_n to_o know_v believe_v love_n and_o obey_v jesus_n christ._n but_o eternal_a life_n be_v perfect_v by_o know_v of_o god_n in_o heaven_n not_o by_o faith_n but_o by_o sight_n now_o arianos_fw-la eternal_a life_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o the_o knowledge_n belief_n or_o love_n of_o any_o mere_a creature_n and_o therefore_o the_o godhead_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v prove_v out_o of_o this_o very_a text_n which_o they_o urge_v who_o deny_v his_o godhead_n to_o justify_v their_o blasphemy_n in_o the_o denial_n of_o it_o 6._o eternal_a life_n do_v consist_v in_o know_v of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o god_n have_v send_v to_o be_v our_o mediator_n and_o this_o eternal_a life_n will_v be_v perfect_v in_o heaven_n when_o the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n will_v have_v a_o end_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o know_v of_o and_o believe_v in_o this_o mediator_n as_o god_n satisfy_v for_o we_o which_o make_v we_o happy_a for_o he_o do_v perfect_a the_o work_n of_o mediator_n as_o god_n by_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n that_o be_v his_o divine_a nature_n heb._n 9_o 14._o and_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n act._n 20._o 28._o by_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n 1_o cor._n 2._o 8._o for_o he_o obtain_v eternal_a redemption_n for_o we_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o eternal_a spirit_n heb._n 9_o 12._o 14._o 7._o to_o know_v jesus_n that_o be_v to_o know_v he_o as_o a_o saviour_n as_o one_o that_o save_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n be_v to_o know_v he_o as_o a_o god_n as_o one_o god_n with_o his_o father_n as_o the_o true_a god_n &_o the_o only_a god_n according_a to_o that_o which_o we_o read_v isa._n 43._o 10_o 11_o 12_o 25._o that_o you_o may_v know_v and_o believe_v and_o understand_v that_o i_o be_o he_o 12._o i_o even_o i_o be_o 33._o jehovah_n and_o beside_o i_o there_o be_v no_o saviour_n and_o isa._n 45._o 21_o 22_o 23_o 24_o 25._o there_o be_v no_o god_n else_o beside_o i_o a_o just_a god_n &_o a_o saviour_n there_o be_v none_o beside_o i_o look_v unto_o i_o and_o be_v you_o save_v all_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o i_o be_o god_n and_o there_o be_v none_o else_o to_o i_o every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v in_o jehovah_n have_v i_o righteousness_n in_o jehovah_n shall_v the_o seed_n of_o israel_n be_v justify_v compare_v this_o with_o rom._n 14._o 10_o 11_o and_o the_o socinian_o may_v as_o safe_o conclude_v that_o theâe_n be_v no_o other_o god_n but_o jesus_n christ_n as_o they_o maâ_n conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o god_n but_o god_n the_o father_n from_o the_o 17._o of_o john_n but_o they_o and_o we_o ought_v to_o conclude_v from_o these_o and_o the_o other_o scripture_n mention_v before_o that_o loââm_n jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o a_o different_a god_n from_o his_o father_n but_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n with_o he_o these_o exclusive_a and_o restrictive_a term_n one_o and_o alone_o etc._n etc._n do_v not_o then_o exclude_v any_o of_o those_o three_o who_o be_v one_o in_o nature_n and_o essence_n though_o they_o differ_v in_o their_o manner_n of_o subsistence_n for_o i_o can_v conclude_v from_o that_o âext_n 1_o cor._n 8._o 6._o to_o we_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n the_o father_n etc._n etc._n that_o the_o father_n only_o be_v god_n no_o more_o than_o i_o can_v conclude_v from_o the_o word_n follow_v in_o the_o very_a samâ_n verse_n and_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o christ_n only_o be_v lord_n and_o so_o exclude_v the_o father_n from_o lordship_n as_o the_o sociman_n will_v exclude_v the_o son_n from_o the_o godhead_n 1_o tim_n 6._o 14_o 15_o 16._o be_v urge_v by_o some_o to_o prove_v that_o jesus_n christ_n only_o have_v immortality_n but_o they_o dare_v not_o conclude_v from_o thence_o quriaum_n that_o god_n the_o father_n be_v not_o immortal_a i_o read_v mat_n 23._o 10._o one_o be_v your_o master_n even_o christ_n but_o i_o must_v not_o conclude_v that_o the_o father_n be_v not_o our_o master_n for_o the_o father_n teach_v joh._n 6._o 45._o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v doctor_n master_n teacher_n even_o to_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o joh._n 14._o 26._o joh_n 16._o 13._o if_o that_o text_n 1_o tim._n 6._o 15_o 16._o be_v mean_v as_o some_o conceive_v it_o be_v of_o god_n the_o father_n yet_o i_o find_v the_o same_o title_n give_v to_o jesus_n christ_n rev._n 19_o 16._o and_o therefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o both_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o immortal_a god_n and_o king_n 1_o âim_n 1._o 12_o 16_o 17._o 1_o joh._n 5._o 20._o i_o read_v 1_o cor._n 12._o 4._o that_o the_o same_o god_n work_v all_o in_o all_o &_o v_o 11._o that_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o spirit_n work_v all_o but_o i_o dare_v not_o conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o spirit_n only_o be_v god_n and_o that_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n work_v nothing_o at_o all_o from_o these_o and_o many_o other_o such_o like_a expression_n we_o may_v safe_o conclude_v 1._o that_o these_o term_n one_o and_o only_a be_v not_o always_o universal_o exclusive_a in_o the_o scripture_n sense_n if_o all_o circumstance_n be_v due_o consider_v and_o the_o scripture_n right_o compare_v 1_o cor._n 9_o 6._o i_o only_o and_o barnabas_n the_o word_n only_a do_v not_o exclude_v barnabas_n but_o include_v he_o barnabas_n be_v join_v with_o paul_n but_o jesus_n christ_n be_v more_o near_o join_v with_o the_o father_n johan._n joh_n 8._o 9_o jesus_n be_v leave_v alone_o but_o the_o woman_n be_v with_o he_o all_o that_o be_v for_o her_o condemnation_n be_v exclude_v 1_o king_n 12._o 20._o there_o be_v two_o exclusive_a term_n there_o be_v none_o follow_v the_o house_n of_o david_n but_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n only_o and_o yet_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n adhere_v to_o david_n as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o the_o next_o verse_n but_o sure_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v more_o close_o unite_v then_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n be_v with_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n deut._n 1._o 36._o none_o shall_v see_v the_o good_a land_n save_o caleb_n but_o josuah_n be_v join_v with_o he_o v_o 38._o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o exclude_v you_o see_v here_o be_v some_o union_n or_o conjunction_n still_o between_o the_o person_n that_o be_v include_v but_o there_o be_v the_o high_a union_n nay_o unity_n between_o the_o father_n son_n and_o spirit_n because_o these_o three_o be_v one_o in_o nature_n and_o that_o nature_n most_o simple_o single_a and_o singular_o one_o 2._o when_o the_o term_n only_o or_o any_o the_o like_a term_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o to_o any_o divine_a enuntiatur_fw-la title_n attribute_n or_o work_v inseparabilia_fw-la the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v one_o in_o nature_n can_v be_v divide_v or_o separate_v by_o that_o exclusive_a term_n though_o there_o be_v a_o personal_a difference_n between_o they_o and_o a_o special_a order_n
and_o dispensation_n to_o be_v observe_v among_o they_o as_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o prove_v but_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o exclude_v all_o that_o be_v not_o god_n by_o nature_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v gal._n 4._o 8._o from_o the_o godhead_n and_o from_o lay_v any_o claim_n to_o the_o natural_a attribute_n of_o god_n or_o pretend_v to_o do_v any_o work_n that_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o god_n the_o true_a and_o live_a god_n be_v oppose_v to_o idol_n 1_o thes._n 1_o 9_o but_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v and_o serve_v as_o oneâ_n rue_v and_o live_a god_n with_o the_o father_n the_o live_a god_n the_o god_n of_o truth_n and_o king_n of_o eternity_n be_v oppose_v to_o those_o counterfeit_a god_n jer_n 10_o 11_o 12._o and_o therefore_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v there_o be_v no_o other_o god_n but_o one_o 1_o cor._n 8_o 4._o he_o tell_v you_o who_o he_o do_v exclude_v such_o as_o be_v but_o conceit_v god_n so_o call_v and_o so_o repute_v equivocal_a god_n v_o 5_o 6._o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n by_o nature_n the_o same_o god_n with_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o exclude_v in_o like_a manner_n when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o jehovah_n alone_o do_v lead_v the_o people_n in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o condâct_v they_o unto_o canaan_n that_o exclusive_a particle_n be_v put_v to_o exclude_v strange_a god_n such_o as_o be_v then_o idolise_v but_o be_v indeed_o no_o god_n as_o be_v most_o evident_a deut._n 32._o 12._o so_o jehovah_n alone_o do_v lead_v he_o and_o there_o be_v no_o strange_a god_n with_o he_o but_o these_o strange_a god_n who_o be_v here_o exclude_v be_v no_o god_n as_o be_v clear_a by_o compare_v the_o 16._o and_o 21._o verse_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n i_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o the_o title_n of_o jehovah_n be_v give_v both_o to_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o therefore_o when_o it_o be_v say_v jehovah_n alone_o do_v lead_v they_o in_o the_o wilderness_n the_o son_n and_o spirit_n be_v not_o exclude_v for_o the_o spirit_n do_v instruct_v and_o guide_v they_o in_o the_o wildernese_n nehem._n 9_o 20._o and_o the_o spirit_n do_v instruct_v their_o teacher_n also_o but_o they_o rebel_v against_o the_o spirit_n isa._n 63._o 10._o and_o jesus_n christ_n the_o angel_n of_o god_n presence_n be_v present_a with_o they_o to_o guide_v they_o exod_a 23._o 21._o 21._o the_o 13._o name_n of_o god_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v in_o he_o for_o he_o be_v to_o pardon_v sin_n or_o punish_v as_o âe_n please_v our_o saviour_n be_v call_v the_o only_a lord_n and_o the_o only_a wise_a god_n jude_n epistle_n in_o the_o 4_o and_o 25._o verse_n but_o the_o father_n be_v not_o thereby_o exclude_v from_o be_v god_n for_o he_o be_v the_o only_a wise_a god_n also_o 1_o âim_fw-la 1._o 17_o and_o therefore_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n the_o father_n be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o the_o son_n and_o spirit_n be_v the_o very_a same_o only_a true_a god_n also_o when_o our_o saviour_n press_v that_o text_n mat._n 4._o 10._o thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v he_o do_v not_o exclude_v himself_o or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o both_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o divine_a worship_n as_o have_v be_v already_o prove_v at_o large_a in_o this_o very_a chapter_n 28._o many_o other_o proof_n may_v be_v produce_v from_o other_o scripture_n and_o divers_a other_o argument_n college_v from_o the_o 17._o of_o john_n to_o prove_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o exclude_v from_o be_v the_o same_o only_a god_n with_o his_o father_n to_o know_v christ_n who_o be_v god_n and_o anoint_v of_o god_n heb._n 1_o 8_o 9_o psal._n 45._o to_o know_v christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v eâgo_o he_o be_v a_o divine_a person_n before_o he_o be_v send_v to_o take_v the_o humane_a nature_n and_o he_o have_v eternal_a glory_n with_o his_o father_n before_o the_o world_n be_v john_n 17._o 5._o naâ_n his_o call_n of_o god_n father_n make_v he_o equal_a with_o god_n nay_o he_o be_v not_o only_o equal_a to_o but_o one_o with_o his_o father_n joh._n 5._o 18._o joh_n 10._o 30._o moreover_o if_o the_o father_n have_v not_o a_o divine_a and_o eternal_a son_n how_o be_v he_o a_o divine_a and_o eternal_a father_n final_o if_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o all_o three_o the_o same_o true_a god_n there_o be_v no_o god_n for_o these_o three_o be_v one_o and_o therefore_o all_o three_o be_v one_o god_n or_o else_o there_o be_v no_o god_n at_o all_o from_o whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o if_o we_o will_v be_v socinian_n we_o must_v be_v atheist_n the_o son_n and_o spirit_n have_v the_o same_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o if_o his_o nature_n be_v divine_a so_o be_v they_o chap._n v._n the_o manner_n of_o god_n be_v or_o subsist_v in_o the_o father_n son_n and_o h._n ghost_n be_v the_o best_a manner_n of_o be_v that_o be_v or_o can_v be_v and_o the_o single_a godhead_n be_v thereby_o thrice_o illustrious_a throughout_o the_o woâld_n hitherto_o we_o have_v contend_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o divine_a be_v or_o subsist_v father_n now_o âe_n shall_v demonstrate_v the_o excellency_n thereof_o god_n be_v make_v know_v to_o we_o as_o the_o everlasting_a father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v &_o glorificamus_fw-la worship_v as_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n rom._n 15._o 6._o ephes._n 1._o 3._o 2_o cor._n 1._o 3_o if_o god_n have_v be_v the_o father_n of_o man_n and_o father_n of_o angel_n only_o and_o not_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n he_o will_v not_o have_v be_v so_o exceed_o glorious_a as_o now_o he_o be_v for_o angle_n have_v but_o a_o sinite_fw-la excellency_n but_o when_o he_o beget_v a_o son_n equal_a to_o himself_o without_o any_o change_n in_o himself_o and_o the_o beget_n of_o this_o glorious_a person_n be_v as_o eternal_a as_o the_o divine_a nature_n itself_o this_o mystery_n be_v exceed_o glorious_a and_o admirable_a and_o like_o the_o godhead_n incomprehensible_a moreover_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n his_o own_o son_n son_n rom._n 8._o 32._o and_o his_o only_a son_n beget_v by_o eternal_a generation_n joh._n 1._o 14._o be_v the_o distinguentem_fw-la illustrious_a brightness_n of_o the_o father_n glory_n and_o the_o express_a character_n of_o his_o subsistence_n be_v so_o exceed_v glorious_a that_o the_o most_o glorious_a angel_n above_o be_v command_v to_o adore_v and_o worship_v he_o heb._n 1._o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6._o for_o to_o which_o of_o the_o angel_n say_v god_n at_o any_o time_n thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o and_o therefore_o when_o he_o bring_v his_o first-begotten_a and_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n into_o the_o world_n he_o say_v and_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o behold_v how_o the_o godhead_n shine_v glorious_o not_o only_a in_o one_o single_a person_n but_o in_o father_n and_o son_n both_o by_o this_o manner_n of_o subsistence_n that_o every_o tongue_n may_v confess_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v god_n and_o lord_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o therefore_o the_o father_n be_v not_o lessen_v or_o rob_v of_o his_o glory_n by_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o coequal_a son_n phil._n 2._o 6._o 11._o but_o there_o be_v a_o pious_a acknowledgement_n make_v of_o this_o glorious_a mystery_n which_o do_v very_o much_o redound_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v god_n the_o father_n be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o first_o personal_a principle_n subsist_v of_o himself_o and_o by_o himself_o for_o he_o receive_v not_o his_o subsistence_n from_o any_o other_o and_o he_o give_v subsistence_n unto_o two_o glorious_a person_n equal_a with_o himself_o the_o socinian_o seem_v to_o be_v very_o zealous_a for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o therefore_o they_o deny_v the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o holâ_n spirit_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n as_o they_o pretend_v but_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o the_o contrary_a namely_o to_o confess_v the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n for_o it_o do_v exceed_o redound_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n that_o he_o give_v subsistence_n unto_o two_o glorious_a person_n who_o be_v equal_a to_o himself_o and_o yet_o receive_v no_o subsistence_n from_o they_o or_o any_o other_o for_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v he_o give_v to_o the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o joh_n
and_o substance_n oâ_n all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v a_o part_n rei_fw-la as_o we_o use_v to_o speak_v but_o because_o we_o be_v not_o able_a distinct_o to_o apprehend_v the_o absolute_a and_o relative_n perfefection_n of_o god_n god_n do_v make_v himself_o know_v to_o we_o in_o a_o way_n most_o suitable_a to_o our_o weak_a apprehension_n in_o represent_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o eternal_a father_n and_o then_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o inquire_v after_o and_o willing_a to_o hear_v of_o a_o eternal_a son_n now_o according_a to_o our_o weak_a manner_n of_o conceive_v we_o must_v needs_o apprehend_v that_o there_o be_v a_o divine_a relation_n between_o the_o eternal_a father_n and_o his_o coeternal_a son_n and_o conclude_v that_o these_o two_o be_v distinguish_v from_o and_o in_o a_o well_o qualify_v sense_n oppose_v to_o one_o another_o with_o a_o mere_a relative_n opposition_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o contrary_a opposition_n between_o the_o person_n but_o this_o relative_n and_o friendly_a opposition_n assure_v we_o that_o the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o son_n and_o that_o the_o father_n do_v not_o beget_v himself_o but_o do_v beget_v his_o son_n but_o than_o we_o consider_v again_o that_o this_o son_n be_v a_o eternal_a son_n and_o therefore_o be_v god_n and_o we_o be_v sure_a god_n do_v not_o beget_v another_o god_n for_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v not_o nay_o can_v be_v exercise_v about_o any_o thing_n repugnant_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o nothing_o be_v more_o repugnant_a to_o the_o godhead_n than_o a_o plurality_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v conclude_v that_o the_o father_n and_o son_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n now_o we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o mystery_n which_o faith_n must_v receive_v and_o reason_n admire_v 7._o we_o may_v best_o resemble_v all_o that_o difference_n which_o be_v between_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n and_o the_o divine_a subsistence_n by_o consider_v the_o transcendent_a affection_n of_o ens_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la and_o the_o attribute_n of_o god_n ãâã_d who_o do_v infinite_o transcend_v not_o only_o a_o praedicamental_a substance_n but_o a_o metaphysical_a entity_n as_o the_o most_o metaphysical_a man_n who_o be_v sound_a in_o the_o faith_n do_v honest_o confess_v 1._o concern_v the_o transcendent_a affection_n of_o ens_fw-la ens._n which_o be_v unum_fw-la verum_fw-la &_o bonum_fw-la we_o say_v these_o three_o affection_n and_o ens_fw-la in_o latitudine_fw-la do_v not_o make_v four_o thing_n real_o distinct_a and_o yet_o we_o say_v they_o be_v real_a and_o positive_a affection_n for_o our_o metaphysical_a science_n have_v too_o much_o serious_a majesty_n to_o be_v please_v with_o the_o pretty_a fiction_n of_o reason_n when_o our_o understanding_n have_v get_v leave_n to_o play_v and_o recreate_v itself_o with_o its_o own_o artificial_a invention_n the_o thing_n be_v most_o clear_a and_o evident_a to_o all_o at_o the_o very_a first_o proposal_n because_o the_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v make_v be_v not_o behold_v to_o god_n only_o for_o their_o entity_n and_o to_o we_o for_o their_o goodness_n for_o the_o thing_n do_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v good_a when_o our_o understanding_n cease_v to_o work_v but_o the_o thing_n be_v true_o and_o real_o good_a whether_o we_o think_v they_o to_o be_v so_o or_o no._n moreover_o we_o say_v that_o these_o positive_a and_o real_a affection_n of_o ens_fw-la do_v not_o make_v any_o composition_n at_o all_o in_o ens_fw-la transcendent_o consider_v because_o then_o the_o most_o simple_a and_o uncompounded_a be_v will_v lose_v its_o be_v for_o simplicity_n will_v be_v repugnant_a to_o entity_n if_o that_o entity_n itself_o do_v involve_v any_o composition_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v agree_v on_o all_o side_n that_o this_o proposition_n ens_fw-la simplex_fw-la est_fw-la ens_fw-la be_v a_o true_a proposition_n final_o from_o what_o have_v be_v say_v it_o be_v reasonable_o and_o common_o infer_v that_o entity_n truth_n goodness_n and_o unity_n make_v but_o one_o real_a thing_n though_o they_o do_v all_o four_o differ_v quoad_fw-la modum_fw-la significandi_fw-la because_o the_o thing_n adaequate_o signify_v by_o all_o those_o four_o word_n be_v but_o one_o real_a thing_n namely_o the_o very_a entity_n of_o ens_fw-la transcendent_o consider_v for_o when_o i_o say_v ens_fw-la est_fw-la unum_fw-la this_o predicate_v vnum_fw-la do_v not_o superadde_a any_o new_a entity_n but_o do_v imply_v and_o connote_v the_o very_a entity_n of_o ens._n nay_o more_o if_o you_o ask_v these_o metaphysical_a man_n what_o this_o transcendent_a unity_n be_v they_o will_v not_o answer_v that_o unity_n be_v indivision_n but_o unity_n be_v the_o very_a undivided_a entity_n itself_o not_o that_o unity_n alone_o do_v signify_v simple_o and_o adaequate_o the_o same_o that_o ens_fw-la do_v in_o tota_fw-la latitudine_fw-la as_o res_n or_o aliquid_fw-la do_v for_o unity_n do_v not_o signify_v truth_n and_o goodness_n which_o be_v the_o two_o other_o transcendent_a affection_n of_o ens_fw-la but_o ens_fw-la in_o its_o complete_a compass_n and_o adequate_a signification_n do_v import_v entity_n truth_n unity_n and_o goodness_n also_o truth_n be_v a_o single_a affection_n of_o ens_fw-la and_o therefore_o it_o do_v signify_v or_o rather_o connote_v entity_n under_o a_o inadaequate_a conceit_n or_o notion_n for_o it_o do_v represent_v ens_fw-la not_o in_o its_o full_a latitude_n but_o as_o consider_v with_o respect_n to_o the_o understanding_n if_o we_o may_v now_o make_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o compare_v the_o essence_n of_o essence_n with_o these_o metaphysical_a notion_n we_o may_v in_o some_o weak_a measure_n resemble_v that_o difference_n which_o be_v between_o the_o essence_n of_o god_n and_o divine_a subsistence_n at_o least_o in_o some_o few_o particular_n for_o if_o when_o we_o compare_v creature_n with_o creature_n there_o appear_v to_o be_v some_o dissimilitude_n even_o in_o the_o most_o apt_a similitude_n and_o no_o similitude_n run_v as_o we_o say_v upon_o four_o foot_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o if_o this_o comparison_n be_v rather_o a_o resemblance_n than_o a_o illustration_n when_o divine_a revelation_n have_v go_v before_o fidem_fw-la and_o we_o have_v build_v upon_o that_o as_o the_o groundwork_n and_o foundation_n by_o a_o serious_a faith_n these_o metaphysical_a notion_n may_v be_v subservient_fw-fr help_n in_o a_o subordinate_a way_n 1._o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v all_o three_o real_o positive_o true_o subsist_v in_o the_o divine_a essence_n and_o yet_o these_o three_o subsistence_n and_o the_o divine_a essence_n do_v not_o make_v four_o no_o nor_o two_o thing_n real_o distinct_a even_o as_o entity_n truth_n goodness_n and_o unity_n do_v not_o make_v four_o thing_n real_o distinct_a as_o you_o hear_v but_o now_o but_o be_v one_o real_a thing_n and_o no_o more_o 2._o ens_fw-la be_v not_o compound_v of_o entity_n and_o its_o three_o affection_n nor_o be_v god_n compound_v of_o the_o godhead_n and_o three_o subsistence_n nor_o be_v any_o one_o person_n compound_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o subsistence_n 3._o as_o truth_n be_v not_o goodness_n nor_o goodness_n truth_n nor_o either_o of_o they_o unity_n and_o yet_o all_o three_o be_v entity_n so_o the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o son_n nor_o be_v the_o son_n the_o father_n nor_o be_v either_o of_o they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o yet_o all_o three_o be_v god_n for_o they_o be_v all_o three_o but_o one_o god_n subsist_v with_o all_o absolute_a and_o relative_a perfection_n as_o have_v be_v show_v 4._o every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o affection_n of_o ens_fw-la do_v connote_v entity_n every_o one_o of_o the_o three_o subsistence_n do_v connote_v the_o godhead_n the_o divine_a nature_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v at_o large_a 5._o not_o any_o one_o of_o the_o three_o affection_n of_o ens_fw-la do_v nor_o do_v all_o three_o together_o superadde_a a_o new_a entity_n not_o any_o one_o of_o the_o three_o subsistence_n do_v nor_o do_v all_o three_o together_o superadde_a a_o new_a deity_n a_o new_a divine_a nature_n or_o godhead_n for_o ens_fw-la conuerso_fw-la be_v one_o ens_fw-la est_fw-la trinum_fw-la non_fw-la triplex_fw-la trinum_fw-la et_fw-la unum_fw-la ens_fw-la trinunum_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la trinus_fw-la non_fw-la triplex_fw-la trinus_fw-la et_fw-la unus_fw-la deus_fw-la trinunus_fw-la this_o instance_n do_v in_o some_o measure_n resemble_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinunity_n 6._o no_o affection_n of_o ens_fw-la can_v be_v real_o separate_v from_o ens_fw-la nor_o can_v one_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o divine_a nature_n or_o the_o divine_a nature_n from_o any_o one_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n or_o any_o one_o of_o the_o person_n from_o either_o of_o the_o other_o two_o 7._o all_o the_o affection_n of_o ens_fw-la be_v distinguish_v but_o none_o divide_v all_o the_o three_o subsistence_n be_v distinguish_v but_o they_o can_v be_v divide_v 8._o truth_n and_o goodness_n
which_o be_v two_o of_o the_o affection_n of_o ens_fw-la be_v distinguish_v by_o their_o several_a and_o peculiar_a relation_n truth_n have_v relation_n to_o the_o understanding_n and_o goodness_n to_o the_o will_v the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v know_v to_o be_v distinguish_v by_o their_o several_a and_o peculiar_a relation_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o unreasonable_a to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v in_o entity_n three_o affection_n and_o two_o relation_n in_o ente_fw-la simplicissimo_fw-la without_o any_o composition_n in_o or_o multiplication_n of_o the_o entity_n why_o shall_v it_o seem_v unreasonable_a or_o at_o least_o why_o shall_v it_o seem_v incredible_a that_o there_o be_v three_o subsistence_n and_o several_a relation_n in_o the_o godhead_n without_o any_o composition_n in_o or_o multiplication_n of_o the_o godhead_n 9_o one_o affection_n nay_o all_o the_o affection_n in_o abstracto_fw-la do_v but_o inadaequate_o represent_v ens_fw-la unless_o you_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o entity_n itself_o as_o well_o as_o the_o three_o affection_n one_o single_a subsistence_n nay_o all_o three_o subsistence_n in_o abstracto_fw-la do_v but_o inadaequate_o represent_v god_n unless_o you_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o godhead_n in_o which_o they_o subsist_v and_o therefore_o this_o praecisive_a abstraction_n of_o the_o subsistence_n from_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v but_o a_o inadaequate_a conceit_n of_o god_n as_o have_v be_v demonstrate_v above_o in_o this_o very_a chapter_n for_o we_o must_v not_o dream_v of_o a_o trinity_n of_o modes_n but_o assert_v and_o believe_v the_o glorious_a and_o coessential_a trinunity_n the_o father_n be_v true_o god_n that_o god_n who_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n but_o the_o father_n alone_o do_v not_o 5._o adaequate_o represent_v god_n to_o we_o as_o he_o be_v describe_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o divine_a essence_n be_v by_o the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o father_n adaequate_o the_o father_n but_o as_o god_n be_v represent_v by_o that_o divine_a subsistence_n only_o he_o be_v not_o deus_fw-la trinunus_fw-la he_o be_v not_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n the_o father_n alone_o be_v not_o all_o those_o three_o witness_n who_o be_v one_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o acute_a socinian_o with_o their_o precise_a abstraction_n do_v but_o suggest_v a_o inadaequate_a conceit_n of_o god_n that_o only_o true_a god_n who_o we_o worship_v do_v not_o subsist_v only_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o father_n we_o worship_v god_n subsist_v with_o all_o absolute_a and_o relative_n perfection_n in_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n for_o these_o three_o be_v that_o one_o god_n who_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n bless_v for_o ever_o this_o be_v the_o adequate_a representation_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n and_o we_o be_v resolve_v to_o regulate_v all_o our_o metaphysical_a notion_n by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o we_o may_v make_v the_o high_a of_o science_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o supremacy_n of_o that_o divine_a science_n which_o be_v nowhere_o to_o be_v learn_v but_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o the_o pure_a âodo_fw-la reason_n must_v be_v elevate_v by_o the_o word_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o the_o discovery_n of_o this_o mystery_n 10._o these_o affection_n of_o ens_fw-la represent_v the_o manner_n of_o that_o be_v which_o ens_fw-la have_v as_o it_o be_v transcendent_o consider_v and_o the_o three_o divine_a subsistence_n do_v represent_v that_o manner_n of_o be_v which_o god_n have_v as_o he_o be_v most_o maximam_fw-la transcendent_o consider_v namely_o as_o subsist_v after_o the_o most_o glorious_a manner_n with_o all_o absolute_a and_o relative_n perfection_n it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o a_o transcendent_a entity_n to_o be_v one_o and_o true_a and_o good_a and_o it_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v one_o god_n in_o three_o subsistence_n these_o three_o be_v one_o single_a god_n there_o be_v no_o composition_n or_o multiplication_n imaginable_a in_o this_o single_a and_o infinite_a be_v i_o be_v bold_a to_o adventure_v upon_o this_o enquiry_n because_o so_o 1_o many_o reverend_a learned_a orthodox_n and_o pious_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v declare_v that_o the_o divine_a essence_n differ_v from_o the_o divine_a subsistence_n as_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o thing_n do_v from_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o the_o person_n differ_v from_o one_o another_o tanquam_fw-la modi_fw-la a_o modis_fw-la i_o conceive_v that_o there_o be_v something_o more_o in_o the_o expression_n than_o be_v common_o know_v moreover_o i_o consider_v that_o if_o there_o may_v be_v so_o great_a simplicity_n or_o singleness_n in_o a_o create_v and_o finite_a entity_n notwithstanding_o there_o be_v three_o affection_n and_o two_o relation_n which_o do_v affect_v that_o entity_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o somewhat_o easy_a to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v three_o subsistence_n in_o one_o infinite_a godhead_n without_o any_o composition_n in_o or_o multiplication_n of_o the_o single_a godhead_n final_o i_o perceive_v that_o some_o youthful_a tower_a wit_n be_v draw_v away_o from_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o some_o frothy_a speculation_n present_v to_o they_o as_o most_o sublime_a curiosity_n and_o deus_fw-la metaphysical_a notion_n and_o therefore_o i_o humble_o submit_v what_o have_v be_v say_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o learned_a and_o conclude_v this_o discourse_n with_o the_o same_o prayer_n wherewith_o augustine_n shut_v up_o his_o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n domine_fw-la deus_fw-la unus_fw-la deus_fw-la trinitas_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la dixi_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la libro_fw-la de_fw-la tuo_fw-la agnoscant_fw-la et_fw-la tui_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la de_fw-fr meo_fw-la et_fw-la tu_fw-la ignosce_fw-la &_o tui_fw-la o_o lord_n who_o art_n one_o god_n o_o god_n who_o be_v a_o whole_a trinity_n of_o person_n in_o the_o godhead_n what_o ever_o i_o have_v say_v in_o this_o discourse_n of_o thou_o let_v all_o that_o be_v thou_o acknowledge_v what_o ever_o i_o have_v say_v of_o my_o own_o lord_n let_v it_o be_v pardon_v by_o thou_o and_o thou_o ii_o concern_v the_o attribute_n of_o god_n we_o may_v observe_v that_o they_o be_v all_o perfect_a glorious_a god_n infinite_a because_o they_o do_v signify_v and_o declare_v the_o infinite_a perfection_n happiness_n majesty_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o to_o speak_v high_a yet_o these_o glorious_a attribute_n though_o they_o be_v very_o many_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o single_a undivided_a indivisible_a essence_n of_o god_n we_o may_v be_v instruct_v but_o be_v even_o deorum_fw-la confound_v with_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o mystery_n there_o be_v three_o reason_n why_o we_o do_v not_o ready_o apprehend_v this_o truth_n 1._o the_o defect_n of_o carnifex_fw-la word_n to_o express_v it_o especial_o in_o english_a but_o indeed_o the_o most_o rich_a and_o copious_a language_n be_v only_o happy_a in_o the_o confession_n of_o their_o penury_n when_o we_o come_v to_o treat_v of_o this_o argument_n because_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o godhead_n do_v transcend_v all_o our_o eloquence_n and_o teach_v we_o to_o admire_v and_o adore_v with_o silence_n what_o we_o can_v express_v without_o a_o manifest_a demonstration_n of_o our_o ignorance_n 2._o the_o imperfect_a manner_n of_o signify_v be_v easy_a to_o be_v observe_v in_o our_o most_o significant_a word_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v confess_v that_o the_o excellency_n of_o god_n do_v transcend_v the_o significancy_n of_o the_o most_o significant_a word_n in_o the_o most_o rich_a and_o copious_a tongue_n 3_o the_o imperfection_n of_o our_o own_o infinitam_fw-la understanding_n and_o of_o our_o manner_n of_o apprehend_v and_o judge_v of_o thing_n while_o we_o be_v in_o the_o ortu_fw-la body_n if_o any_o man_n desire_v to_o know_v a_o reason_n why_o he_o can_v ready_o apprehend_v these_o divine_a mystery_n let_v he_o consider_v the_o perfection_n of_o the_o mystery_n and_o the_o imperfection_n of_o his_o own_o reason_n &_o he_o have_v a_o sufficient_a reason_n a_o reason_n from_o whence_o he_o may_v draw_v a_o most_o invincible_a argument_n against_o idolize_v of_o his_o own_o reason_n so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v his_o reason_n judge_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n let_v we_o then_o prudent_o consider_v that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o apprehend_v the_o capit_fw-la infinite_a and_o impartible_a essence_n of_o god_n but_o as_o it_o be_v by_o part_n by_o many_o incomplete_a and_o inadaequate_a conceit_n and_o apprehension_n the_o most_o profound_a and_o serious_a 2._o schoolman_n have_v fair_o express_v this_o truth_n there_o be_v not_o say_v they_o many_o attribute_n all_o perfection_n nay_o there_o be_v but_o one_o perfection_n in_o god_n for_o all_o the_o essential_a attribute_n of_o god_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o single_a and_o undivided_a essence_n which_o be_v singular_o and_o altogether_o the_o same_o essence_n in_o all_o three_o subsistence_n nay_o to_o speak_v proper_o the_o diuâne_a
singular_a nature_n or_o substance_n because_o every_o finite_a nature_n be_v imperfect_a and_o divisible_a the_o humane_a nature_n be_v communicate_v to_o paul_n peter_n and_o john_n now_o these_o three_o person_n be_v three_o man_n for_o they_o have_v three_o distinct_a singular_a nature_n though_o they_o have_v one_o universal_a nature_n and_o no_o wonder_n for_o their_o nature_n be_v imperfect_a and_o divisible_a their_o universal_a nature_n be_v unum_fw-la multiplicabile_fw-la but_o the_o nature_n which_o be_v common_a to_o these_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v not_o universal_a but_o singular_a it_o be_v unum_fw-la immultiplicabile_fw-la because_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v infinite_a and_o that_o which_o be_v infinite_a can_v be_v multiply_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v real_a alius_fw-la and_o most_o perfect_o singular_a the_o same_o singular_a nature_n the_o whole_a nature_n be_v of_o bind_v less_o perfection_n be_v real_o and_o eternal_o communicate_v to_o all_o three_o person_n without_o any_o division_n of_o the_o nature_n separation_n of_o the_o person_n or_o composition_n of_o nature_n and_o person_n the_o person_n be_v distinguish_v but_o not_o separate_v and_o if_o we_o speak_v proper_o and_o strict_o the_o divine_a multiplicatur_fw-la nature_n as_o it_o be_v common_a to_o all_o three_o person_n be_v neither_o distinguish_v nor_o multiply_v for_o the_o nature_n be_v not_o distinguish_v from_o samosat_n itself_o nor_o be_v the_o person_n distinguish_v from_o one_o another_o by_o the_o nature_n or_o natural_a property_n but_o by_o personal_a property_n incommunicable_a which_o be_v not_o natural_o common_a to_o all_o three_o as_o the_o attribute_n be_v which_o we_o call_v natural_a because_o they_o be_v essential_a for_o these_o personal_a property_n be_v natural_o peculiar_a and_o incommunicable_a and_o yet_o they_o do_v nor_o superadd_a any_o new_a nature_n because_o the_o divine_a nature_n do_v contain_v all_o relative_n as_o well_o as_o absolute_a perfection_n in_o it_o and_o the_o godhead_n consider_v with_o all_o these_o incommunicable_a property_n be_v but_o one_o single_a godhead_n as_o have_v be_v show_v this_o be_v a_o transcendent_a modo_fw-la mystery_n indeed_o v._o create_v person_n have_v a_o different_a understanding_n person_n a_o different_a will_n a_o different_a power_n because_o they_o have_v a_o different_a nature_n but_o uncreated_a person_n who_o have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o undivided_a and_o infinite_a nature_n must_v needs_o have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o understanding_n will_n and_o power_n for_o we_o can_v comprehend_v god_n as_o one_o pure_a vital_a act_n but_o as_o his_o life_n be_v actuous_a potentiâ_fw-la or_o active_a in_o his_o understanding_n and_o will_n in_o his_o essential_a and_o almighty_a power_n now_o what_o be_v est_fw-la essential_a that_o must_v needs_o be_v common_a to_o all_o three_o person_n whatsoever_o the_o father_n be_v as_o he_o be_v substance_n as_o he_o be_v life_n as_o he_o be_v eternity_n as_o he_o be_v perfection_n as_o he_o be_v god_n the_o same_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o augustiâ_n do_v frequent_o discourse_n when_o the_o subjecto_fw-la attribute_n or_o predicate_v be_v essential_a whatsoever_o be_v affirm_v of_o the_o attribute_n or_o predicate_v that_o must_v needs_o be_v true_a of_o the_o subject_n as_o the_o philosopher_n and_o all_o that_o have_v any_o reason_n in_o they_o do_v unanimous_o conclude_v the_o essential_a power_n of_o god_n be_v the_o very_a essence_n of_o god_n god_n do_v act_n by_o and_o of_o himself_o and_o not_o by_o any_o faculty_n or_o power_n superad_v to_o his_o essence_n christ_n be_v call_v the_o 339._o power_n of_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a 449._o ghost_n be_v call_v the_o power_n of_o the_o most_o high_a 1_o cor._n 1._o v._n 8._o 24._o luke_n 1_o 35._o to_o show_v that_o they_o have_v the_o same_o essential_a power_n that_o the_o father_n have_v christ_n say_v that_o none_o can_v take_v his_o sheep_n out_o of_o his_o hand_n because_o none_o can_v take_v they_o out_o of_o his_o father_n hand_n for_o say_v he_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o john_n 5._o 28_o 29_o 30._o we_o have_v one_o nature_n one_o hand_n that_o be_v one_o power_n for_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n can_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o since_o all_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v one_o god_n because_o they_o have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o divine_a nature_n thâse_a three_o be_v gratiam_fw-la one_o with_o the_o most_o perfect_a and_o singular_a manner_n of_o unity_n final_o since_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v the_o essence_n of_o god_n it_o must_v reed_n follow_v that_o all_o three_o person_n have_v the_o same_o power_n because_o they_o have_v the_o same_o divine_a essence_n and_o they_o have_v the_o selfsame_a essence_n by_o nature_n not_o by_o mere_a indulgence_n or_o grace_n but_o then_o some_o who_o have_v a_o great_a mind_n to_o cavil_n objection_n tell_v we_o that_o we_o do_v but_o equivocate_v when_o we_o say_v these_o three_o person_n have_v the_o same_o essential_a power_n because_o we_o do_v conceal_v the_o other_o member_n of_o the_o distinction_n which_o be_v relative_n or_o answer_n personal_a power_n now_o it_o be_v impossible_a say_v they_o that_o these_o three_o shall_v have_v the_o same_o personal_a or_o relative_n power_n because_o the_o father_n do_v beget_v a_o son_n as_o he_o be_v god_n the_o father_n as_o he_o be_v the_o first_o personal_a principle_n and_o not_o simple_o and_o absolute_o as_o he_o be_v god_n but_o the_o son_n have_v not_o power_n to_o beget_v himself_o or_o to_o beget_v another_o son_n because_o there_o can_v be_v but_o three_o divine_a person_n and_o there_o be_v but_o one_o of_o the_o three_o call_v a_o son_n in_o scripture_n moreover_o the_o son_n be_v beget_v and_o therefore_o his_o power_n be_v rather_o a_o passive_n than_o a_o active_a power_n but_o the_o power_n of_o the_o father_n whereby_o he_o do_v beget_v his_o son_n be_v a_o active_a power_n nor_o do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n breath_n forth_o himself_o by_o his_o own_o power_n for_o he_o do_v not_o proceed_v from_o himself_o but_o from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o therefore_o though_o there_o be_v but_o one_o essential_a power_n it_o shall_v seem_v that_o there_o be_v three_o personal_a or_o relative_n power_n true_o distinct_a in_o the_o godhead_n this_o argument_n be_v the_o most_o plausible_a argument_n which_o be_v urge_v by_o they_o and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v most_o wary_o answer_v 1._o we_o do_v not_o equivocate_v in_o this_o or_o any_o other_o point_n but_o do_v ready_o acknowledge_v that_o god_n the_o father_n do_v beget_v a_o son_n as_o he_o be_v god_n the_o father_n and_o not_o simple_o and_o absolute_o as_o he_o be_v god_n because_o this_o eternal_a generation_n point_v at_o a_o personal_a property_n consider_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o vital_a act._n but_o then_o as_o this_o personal_a property_n and_o relation_n do_v not_o differ_v real_o from_o the_o divine_a essence_n so_o this_o personal_a power_n of_o beget_v do_v not_o differ_v real_o from_o the_o essential_a power_n because_o god_n do_v beget_v a_o son_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o own_o divine_a essence_n his_o son_n be_v ultimo_fw-la equal_a to_o he_o and_o therefore_o not_o 18._o essential_o 6._o different_a from_o he_o john_n 5._o 18._o 26._o john_n 10._o 30._o nulla_fw-la fuit_fw-la mutatio_fw-la essentialis_fw-la in_o filio_fw-la cujus_fw-la essentia_fw-la est_fw-la immutablis_fw-la 2._o we_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v a_o active_a power_n in_o the_o father_n genitus_fw-la and_o a_o passive_a power_n in_o the_o son_n in_o respect_n of_o generation_n because_o a_o passive_a power_n note_v materiality_n and_o imperfection_n but_o this_o eternal_a generation_n can_v be_v material_a for_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n infinite_o more_o spiritual_a than_o the_o most_o glorious_a angel_n pater_fw-la genuit_fw-la filium_fw-la &_o filius_fw-la genitus_fw-la est_fw-la spiritualiter_fw-la immutabiliter_fw-la 3._o the_o two_o word_n of_o beget_v and_o be_v 1._o beget_v which_o be_v use_v in_o scripture_n do_v not_o point_v at_o two_o different_a power_n a_o active_a and_o a_o passive_a but_o at_o two_o different_a person_n the_o father_n who_o do_v beget_v and_o the_o son_n who_o be_v never_o unbegotten_a micah_n 5._o 2._o for_o he_o be_v of_o old_a from_o the_o day_n of_o eternity_n 4._o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o father_n to_o forbear_v the_o beget_n of_o his_o son_n because_o the_o son_n be_v ens_fw-la pater_fw-la sum_n necessarium_fw-la as_o well_o as_o the_o father_n the_o son_n be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d god_n of_o himself_o and_o not_o god_n by_o participation_n nor_o a_o different_a god_n from_o the_o father_n but_o the_o same_o god_n with_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o a_o independent_a eternal_a god_n who_o do_v not_o begin_v
of_o isaiah_n be_v behold_v a_o virgin_n shall_v conceive_v and_o bear_v a_o son_n and_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n immanuel_n isaiah_n 7._o 14._o they_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n jesus_n matth._n 1._o 21._o he_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o high_a the_o son_n of_o god_n luke_n 1_o you_o see_v the_o word_n be_v different_a and_o therefore_o we_o must_v have_v special_a respect_n to_o the_o thing_n signify_v observe_v then_o 1._o that_o the_o prophet_n do_v foretell_v two_o particular_n first_o that_o a_o virgin_n shall_v bear_v a_o son_n second_o that_o the_o son_n bear_v of_o she_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o virgin_n doubt_v of_o the_o first_o particular_a and_o inquire_v how_o that_o can_v be_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o a_o man_n the_o angel_n inform_v she_o that_o she_o shall_v conceive_v after_o a_o peculiar_a and_o admirable_a manner_n by_o the_o overshadow_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o from_o thence_o infer_v the_o second_o particular_a that_o she_o shall_v bring_v forth_o a_o son_n who_o be_v to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o he_o give_v the_o very_a same_o reason_n which_o be_v give_v by_o saint_n matthew_n because_o it_o be_v so_o foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n matth_n 1._o 20_o 21_o 22._o for_o the_o particle_n therefore_o luke_n 1._o 35._o be_v not_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o conception_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o divine_a sonship_n but_o to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o isaiah_n record_v luke_n 1._o 31._o for_o all_o this_o be_v do_v that_o it_o may_v be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n matth._n 1._o 22._o 2._o they_o shall_v call_v his_o name_n immanuel_n god_n with_o we_o and_o therefore_o he_o the_o same_o person_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n this_o be_v a_o high_a reason_n than_o that_o which_o the_o socinian_o allege_v 3._o the_o socinian_o put_v a_o fallacy_n upon_o we_o by_o assign_v that_o to_o be_v the_o cause_n which_o be_v not_o the_o true_a cause_n ponitur_fw-la he_o shall_v be_v call_v that_o be_v declare_v and_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n this_o declaration_n or_o manifestation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o flesh_n be_v temporal_a 1_o tim._n 3._o 16._o but_o his_o generation_n be_v eternal_a micah_n 5._o 2._o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v send_v manifest_v incarnate_a in_o the_o fullness_n of_o time_n gal._n 4._o 4._o but_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n before_o his_o incarnation_n and_o therefore_o his_o incarnation_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o divine_a sonship_n the_o effect_n can_v be_v before_o the_o cause_n but_o the_o divine_a sonship_n of_o christ_n be_v before_o the_o world_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v never_o call_v the_o father_n of_o christ_n and_o he_o can_v not_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o subsistence_n or_o the_o word_n and_o therefore_o not_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o divine_a sonship_n the_o apostle_n state_n the_o point_n and_o put_v it_o past_o all_o dispute_n rom._n 1._o 3_o 4._o christ_n be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n but_o determine_v and_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n by_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a from_o whence_o it_o follow_v direct_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o proper_o the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n but_o be_v in_o that_o consideration_n rather_o to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o david_n as_o we_o observe_v above_o because_o christ_n come_v of_o david_n as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n but_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n be_v god_n bless_v for_o ever_o rom._n 9_o 5._o when_o the_o jew_n say_v that_o our_o saviour_n blaspheme_v because_o he_o make_v himself_o god_n john_n 10_o 33._o christ_n ask_v they_o whether_o they_o do_v accuse_v he_o of_o blasphemy_n because_o he_o say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n v_o 36._o whereby_o he_o declare_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o his_o person_n which_o be_v true_o divine_a believe_v say_v he_o that_o the_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o v_o 38._o the_o force_n of_o his_o answer_n be_v evident_a i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o and_o therefore_o i_o be_o a_o divine_a person_n i_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v communicate_v to_o my_o person_n i_o be_o beget_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o god_n head_n i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o therefore_o if_o it_o be_v no_o blasphemy_n for_o i_o to_o say_v that_o i_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n it_o be_v no_o blasphemy_n at_o all_o to_o say_v that_o i_o be_o god_n because_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v communitate_v to_o the_o natural_a and_o proper_a son_n of_o god_n there_o be_v the_o proper_a reason_n why_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v communicate_v to_o he_o by_o a_o eternal_a generation_n ii_o the_o second_o cause_n assign_v by_o the_o socinian_o why_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n vindicate_v be_v the_o sanctification_n of_o christ_n for_o which_o they_o cite_v john_n 10._o 35_o 36._o behold_v say_v they_o the_o second_o cause_n of_o this_o divine_a sonship_n plain_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o christ_n have_v obtain_v a_o excellent_a portion_n of_o the_o spirit_n he_o be_v sanctify_v and_o send_v with_o a_o divine_a power_n into_o the_o world_n to_o save_v mankind_n to_o which_o we_o answer_v that_o here_o be_v the_o same_o fallacy_n obtrude_v again_o because_o 1._o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n before_o he_o be_v send_v into_o the_o world_n 2._o god_n do_v not_o give_v the_o spirit_n by_o measure_n to_o he_o john_n 3._o 34._o 3._o christ_n prove_v in_o that_o ten_o chapter_n of_o john_n that_o he_o be_v one_o with_o his_o father_n in_o power_n and_o therefore_o in_o nature_n as_o appear_v 1._o because_o he_o do_v the_o same_o work_n that_o his_o father_n do_v v_o 37._o 2._o because_o he_o be_v in_o his_o father_n and_o his_o father_n in_o he_o v_o 38._o 3._o because_o he_o be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o may_v true_o call_v himself_o god_n v_o 33._o 36._o 4._o because_o they_o themselves_o call_v magistrate_n god_n upon_o a_o cheap_a account_n only_o in_o regard_n of_o their_o commission_n and_o office_n much_o more_o may_v he_o call_v himself_o god_n because_o he_o be_v sanctify_v without_o measure_n have_v a_o high_a office_n and_o commission_n be_v send_v to_o do_v the_o work_n of_o god_n to_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n and_o save_v the_o elect_a of_o god_n which_o he_o can_v not_o have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v not_o have_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o be_v thereby_o full_o enable_v to_o perfect_v this_o work_n of_o god_n the_o argument_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o infinite_a distance_n and_o imparity_n between_o the_o office_n of_o a_o mediator_n and_o the_o office_n of_o a_o magistrate_n between_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n who_o be_v one_o with_o his_o father_n who_o beget_v he_o and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n who_o be_v but_o the_o deputy_n of_o god_n iii_o the_o three_o cause_n which_o they_o assign_v of_o this_o divine_a sonship_n 1â_n be_v the_o special_a love_n of_o the_o father_n to_o this_o excellent_a son_n matth._n 3._o 17._o to_o this_o we_o answer_v that_o god_n do_v not_o make_v christ_n his_o son_n because_o he_o love_v he_o but_o he_o love_v he_o because_o he_o be_v his_o son_n a_o son_n equal_a to_o himself_o one_o with_o himself_o the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o person_n the_o illustrious_a brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n that_o very_a place_n which_o they_o cite_v make_v much_o against_o they_o god_n do_v from_o heaven_n own_o christ_n for_o his_o proper_a and_o natural_a son_n in_o that_o very_a place_n matth._n 3._o 17._o god_n say_v not_o so_o to_o the_o best_a of_o angel_n hebr._n 1._o 4._o 5_o to_o which_o of_o the_o angel_n say_v he_o at_o any_o time_n exemptum_fw-la thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o that_o one_o place_n be_v sufficient_a to_o discover_v the_o fraud_n of_o the_o socinian_o in_o this_o point_n iv._o the_o four_o cause_n which_o they_o assign_v be_v the_o resurrection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n cause_n because_o when_o christ_n be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a he_o be_v as_o it_o be_v beget_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a act_v 13._o 32_o 33._o to_o which_o we_o answer_v 299._o that_o christ_n be_v the_o natural_a and_o proper_a son_n of_o god_n before_o his_o resurrection_n only_o he_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o
his_o resurrection_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 1._o v._n 4._o declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n that_o be_v his_o divine_a nature_n by_o the_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a christ_n be_v not_o make_v but_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o his_o resurrection_n his_o divine_a sonship_n lie_v hide_v under_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n before_o only_o they_o who_o have_v spiritual_a eye_n do_v discern_v it_o john_n 1._o 14._o we_o have_v see_v and_o behold_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n moreover_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o the_o apostle_n endeavour_v to_o make_v the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n divine_a sonship_n manifest_v in_o the_o thirteen_o of_o the_o act_n not_o simple_o by_o his_o resurrection_n but_o by_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o the_o state_n whereunto_o he_o be_v raise_v 1._o for_o the_o manner_n he_o be_v raise_v by_o his_o own_o almighty_a and_o most_o glorious_a power_n in_o a_o irresistible_a way_n he_o do_v offer_v violence_n to_o all_o the_o force_n of_o death_n and_o power_n of_o the_o grave_n because_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v hold_v of_o they_o act_n â_o 24._o when_o he_o come_v to_o declare_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o power_n rom._n 1._o 4._o 2_o for_o the_o state_n whereunto_o he_o be_v raise_v he_o do_v not_o rise_v to_o return_v to_o the_o grave_n again_o as_o lazarus_n do_v but_o he_o raise_v himself_o to_o a_o immortal_a life_n and_o as_o concern_v that_o he_o raise_v he_o up_o from_o the_o dead_a now_o no_o more_o to_o return_v to_o corruption_n act_v 13._o 34._o rom._n 6._o 9_o now_o god_n by_o raise_v christ_n after_o such_o a_o manner_n to_o such_o a_o state_n do_v declare_v he_o to_o be_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o who_o david_n speak_v in_o the_o second_o psalm_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n that_o god_n have_v fulfil_v his_o promise_n by_o send_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n to_o be_v a_o saviour_n unto_o israel_n that_o we_o may_v have_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n and_o all_o sure_a mercy_n by_o he_o who_o die_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o rise_v again_o for_o our_o justification_n this_o be_v the_o scope_n of_o the_o apostle_n discourse_n in_o the_o thirteen_o of_o the_o act_n from_o the_o 23_o verse_n to_o the_o 39·_a the_o second_o psalm_n be_v cite_v here_o by_o accommodation_n to_o make_v good_a a_o remote_a and_o implicit_a consequence_n as_o those_o word_n i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n isaac_n etc._n etc._n be_v cite_v to_o prove_v a_o resurrection_n by_o a_o implicit_a consequence_n matth._n 22._o 31_o 32._o thou_o be_v my_o son_n my_o own_o proper_a son_n who_o i_o own_o for_o my_o only_o beget_v son_n by_o raise_v thou_o to_o a_o never_o die_a life_n the_o five_o cause_n which_o they_o assign_v cause_n be_v the_o exaltation_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n to_o glory_n and_o the_o confer_v of_o a_o name_n and_o power_n upon_o he_o above_o all_o creature_n for_o the_o apostle_n as_o they_o conceive_v speak_v of_o this_o sonship_n hebr._n 5._o 5._o so_o also_o christ_n glorify_v not_o himself_o to_o be_v make_v a_o high_a priest_n but_o he_o that_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n to_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o i_o can_v but_o admire_v that_o the_o acute_a socinian_o shall_v cite_v every_o place_n where_o the_o second_o psalm_n be_v name_v to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o several_a cause_n of_o the_o divine_a sonship_n of_o christ_n but_o i_o do_v more_o admire_v that_o they_o shall_v cite_v this_o text_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n for_o if_o their_o five_o argument_n have_v any_o force_n in_o it_o do_v overthrow_n and_o disprove_v their_o four_o first_o argument_n if_o christ_n be_v not_o beget_v before_o his_o exaltation_n to_o glory_n than_o he_o be_v not_o the_o son_n of_o god_n before_o his_o exaltation_n for_o sure_o these_o man_n of_o reason_n will_v easy_o grant_v that_o the_o effect_n can_v be_v before_o its_o proper_a and_o complete_a cause_n be_v in_o its_o causal_n actuality_n or_o actual_a causality_n the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o second_o psalm_n be_v so_o often_o repeat_v to_o teach_v we_o to_o keep_v our_o eye_n constant_o fix_v upon_o the_o divine_a sonship_n of_o christ_n when_o ever_o we_o discourse_v of_o his_o conception_n birth_n resurrection_n transfiguration_n exaltation_n to_o glory_n and_o conclude_v that_o the_o selfsame_a person_n who_o be_v beget_v of_o god_n from_o the_o day_n of_o eternity_n take_v our_o flesh_n die_v for_o our_o sin_n and_o rise_v for_o our_o justification_n for_o this_o be_v that_o great_a and_o fundamental_a truth_n which_o run_v quite_o through_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o son_n of_o mary_n who_o do_v and_o suffer_v all_o for_o we_o be_v the_o proper_a the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n the_o only_a and_o all-sufficient_a saviour_n of_o his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n we_o must_v not_o part_v with_o this_o truth_n for_o this_o be_v all_o our_o salvation_n it_o be_v very_o proper_a for_o the_o apostle_n to_o speak_v of_o his_o divine_a sonship_n when_o ever_o he_o speak_v of_o he_o as_o a_o mediator_n as_o a_o priest_n etc._n etc._n because_o he_o can_v not_o have_v undertake_v or_o go_v through_o with_o any_o such_o office_n unless_o he_o have_v be_v the_o natural_a and_o proper_a son_n of_o god_n equal_a to_o god_n and_o therefore_o we_o do_v ready_o grant_v that_o the_o divine_a office_n of_o christ_n do_v declare_v and_o make_v manifest_a the_o divine_a sonship_n and_o nature_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o this_o truth_n be_v most_o evident_a from_o the_o connexion_n of_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o verse_n of_o the_o second_o psalm_n i_o have_v with_o the_o more_o patience_n and_o content_n wade_v through_o this_o large_a and_o deep_a sea_n that_o i_o may_v come_v to_o the_o haven_n where_o we_o desire_v to_o be_v that_o we_o may_v come_v to_o take_v harbour_n and_o sanctuary_n in_o the_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o natural_a and_o proper_a son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o be_o to_o prove_v the_o eternal_a procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereby_o i_o shall_v make_v the_o distinction_n of_o the_o person_n more_o clear_a and_o evident_a and_o therefore_o i_o hasten_v to_o the_o discuss_n of_o that_o mysterious_a but_o useful_a point_n the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v not_o call_v a_o spirit_n because_o of_o his_o spiritual_a nature_n only_o procedit_fw-la for_o the_o same_o spiritual_a nature_n be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o three_o bless_a person_n but_o he_o be_v call_v a_o spirit_n upon_o a_o special_a and_o peculiar_a reason_n because_o he_o be_v breathe_v forth_o by_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v call_v the_o spirit_n which_o be_v of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 2._o 1â_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o spirit_n who_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n be_v send_v by_o the_o son_n from_o the_o father_n john_n 15._o 26._o the_o greek_a church_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o spirit_n do_v proceed_v from_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n all_o thing_n that_o the_o father_n have_v be_v i_o say_v our_o saviour_n john_n 16._o 15._o but_o the_o spirit_n do_v receive_v all_o from_o the_o father_n and_o christ_n and_o his_o father_n be_v essential_o one_o john_n 10._o 30._o the_o spirit_n be_v say_v to_o receive_v of_o the_o son_n and_o to_o glorify_v the_o son_n john_n 16._o 14._o whatsoever_o thing_n the_o father_n do_v the_o son_n do_v and_o as_o the_o son_n can_v do_v nothing_o without_o the_o father_n so_o the_o father_n can_v do_v nothing_o without_o the_o son_n not_o that_o there_o be_v a_o defect_n of_o power_n in_o either_o but_o a_o unity_n of_o power_n and_o nature_n in_o both_o theol._n the_o divine_a nature_n of_o both_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v communicate_v to_o the_o spirit_n by_o this_o eternal_a spiration_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v send_v by_o both_o and_o he_o receive_v of_o both_o and_o he_o glorify_v both_o and_o he_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o both_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n he_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o father_n matth._n 10._o 20_o because_o he_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n john_n 15._o 26._o and_o he_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n gal._n 4._o 6._o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n rom._n 8._o 9_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n phil._n 1._o 19_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n 1_o pet._n 1._o 11._o because_o he_o receive_v of_o christ_n be_v send_v from_o christ_n be_v breathe_v forth_o by_o
saviour_n say_v god_n be_v a_o spirit_n gospel-conversation_n and_o from_o thence_o conclude_v that_o god_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n also_o we_o be_v to_o worship_n god_n as_o a_o creator_n as_o the_o first_o of_o cause_n faith_n last_o of_o end_n best_a of_o being_n to_o who_o we_o owe_v our_o be_v and_o our_o well-being_n but_o we_o must_v worship_v god_n the_o father_n as_o god_n and_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o as_o our_o father_n reconcile_v to_o we_o in_o christ_n this_o be_v that_o worship_n which_o become_v the_o gospel_n adorationis_fw-la and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o worship_n god_n the_o father_n consider_v after_o this_o evangelicall_n manner_n that_o he_o may_v be_v glorify_v we_o move_v and_o affect_v with_o those_o endear_n expression_n o_o god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o our_o father_n in_o he_o such_o expression_n as_o these_o do_v beget_v in_o we_o 1._o holy_a boldness_n mix_v with_o reverence_n ãâã_d 2._o christian_n confidence_n our_o father_n will_v supply_v the_o want_n of_o his_o child_n out_o of_o his_o rich_a treasure_n for_o he_o command_v heaven_n &_o earth_n 3._o filial_a love_n and_o cheerful_a obedience_n which_o be_v even_o connaturall_a to_o our_o new_a man_n upon_o due_a consideration_n of_o this_o sweet_a relation_n between_o god_n and_o we_o jer._n 3._o 19_o 4._o a_o thankful_a acknowledgement_n of_o god_n fatherly_a bounty_n even_o unto_o admiration_n behold_v what_o manner_n of_o love_n the_o father_n have_v bestow_v upon_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 1_o joh._n 3._o 1._o nay_o heir_n of_o god_n rom._n 8._o 17._o what_o be_v we_o vile_a wretch_n worm_n and_o no_o man_n yea_o by_o reason_n of_o our_o filthiness_n dog_n and_o devil_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v adopt_v into_o the_o family_n of_o god_n marry_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o make_v co-heyrs_a with_o the_o lord_n of_o glory_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o man_n be_v raise_v by_o such_o thankful_a acknowledgement_n unto_o a_o holy_a admiration_n than_o it_o be_v bring_v into_o a_o gospel_n frame_n and_o by_o such_o high_a and_o sweet_a thought_n of_o god_n fatherly_a love_n and_o bounty_n fit_v for_o filial_a and_o gospel-worship_n but_o it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o the_o whole_a trinity_n be_v our_o father_n father_n and_o therefore_o all_o three_o person_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v under_o that_o fatherly_a consideration_n and_o in_o that_o dear_a relation_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o when_o the_o word_n father_n be_v attribute_v unto_o god_n essential_o though_o all_o creature_n be_v exclude_v yet_o all_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v include_v because_o they_o be_v coequal_a they_o have_v one_o nature_n will_n and_o worship_n they_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n and_o they_o be_v one_o father_n also_o in_o opposition_n to_o image_n jer._n 2._o 27._o 27._o to_o saint_n is._n 63._o 16._o 16._o doubtless_o thou_o be_v our_o father_n 6_o though_o abraham_n be_v ignorant_a of_o we_o 9_o and_o israel_n acknowledge_v we_o not_o thou_o o_o lord_n be_v our_o father_n our_o redeemer_n thy_o name_n be_v from_o everlasting_a and_o in_o opposition_n to_o all_o creature_n mat._n 23._o 9_o and_o in_o the_o lord_n prayer_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v all_o call_v upon_o as_o our_o father_n 2._o the_o word_n father_n be_v sometime_o take_v personal_o and_o attribute_v to_o a_o single_a person_n of_o the_o godhead_n more_o frequent_o and_o more_o peculiarly_a to_o god_n the_o father_n who_o be_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o subsist_v life_n even_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o own_o natural_a and_o coessential_a son_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o this_o treatise_n and_o be_v to_o be_v reckon_v first_o in_o order_n and_o final_o in_o regard_n of_o our_o adoption_n and_o the_o mysterious_a and_o divine_a oeconomy_n and_o dispensation_n vouchsafe_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n and_o yet_o these_o peculiar_a notion_n do_v not_o exclude_v the_o other_o person_n from_o be_v god_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v above_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n nor_o do_v they_o exclude_v they_o from_o be_v our_o father_n in_o the_o common_a notion_n of_o father_n in_o opposition_n to_o creature_n and_o idol_n father_n nay_o all_o three_o person_n have_v a_o fatherly_a care_n of_o we_o 14._o and_o love_n to_o we_o and_o therefore_o christ_n be_v call_v our_o father_n isa._n 9_o 6._o &_o heb._n 2._o 13_o 14._o and_o it_o be_v the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o regenerate_v we_o father_n as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o father_n to_o adopt_v we_o but_o then_o the_o father_n do_v adopt_v we_o in_o christ_n who_o be_v a_o father_n to_o we_o though_o a_o son_n to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o regeneration_n and_o adoption_n and_o therefore_o all_o three_o coessential_a person_n be_v our_o father_n 3._o we_o may_v direct_v our_o prayer_n to_o any_o one_o person_n as_o steven_n direct_v his_o to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n act._n 7._o 59_o lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n 4._o we_o may_v direct_v our_o prayer_n express_o unto_o two_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n now_o god_n himself_o and_o our_o father_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n direct_v our_o way_n unto_o you_o 1_o thes._n 3._o 11._o 5._o we_o may_v direct_v our_o prayer_n unto_o all_o three_o as_o we_o do_v in_o the_o administration_n of_o baptism_n and_o in_o that_o fundamental_a benediction_n 2_o cor._n 13_o 14._o 6._o when_o we_o direct_v our_o prayer_n to_o one_o of_o the_o divine_a person_n we_o exclude_v none_o because_o the_o person_n be_v in_o one_o another_o the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o son_n and_o they_o be_v all_o three_o coessential_a coequal_a they_o be_v one_o god_n and_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o that_o self_n same_o religious_a and_o divine_a worship_n which_o be_v due_a to_o their_o single_a and_o undivided_a godhead_n 7._o when_o we_o direct_v our_o prayer_n to_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n way_n the_o term_n father_n be_v take_v in_o a_o peculiar_a notion_n not_o in_o the_o common_a notion_n and_o the_o apostle_n direct_v his_o prayer_n after_o this_o peculiar_a manner_n eph._n 3._o 14._o for_o this_o cause_n i_o bow_v my_o knee_n unto_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n of_o who_o the_o whole_a family_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v name_v god_n the_o father_n look_v upon_o we_o poor_a worm_n as_o part_v of_o his_o family_n nay_o as_o his_o dear_a child_n while_o we_o be_v here_o on_o earth_n as_o well_o as_o he_o look_v upon_o his_o other_o child_n the_o glorious_a saint_n who_o be_v make_v perfect_a in_o heaven_n gospell-worship_n oh_o what_o a_o quicken_a consideration_n be_v this_o to_o bring_v we_o upon_o our_o knee_n at_o a_o throne_n of_o grace_n before_o christ_n father_n and_o our_o father_n that_o we_o may_v have_v a_o child_n portion_n and_o be_v prepare_v for_o that_o place_n which_o christ_n be_v now_o prepare_v for_o we_o we_o be_v part_n of_o the_o family_n number_v among_o those_o of_o the_o best_a rank_n 14._o we_o be_v child_n and_o have_v the_o same_o father_n that_o christ_n and_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n have_v john_n 20._o 17._o ephes._n 3._o 14._o and_o therefore_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v coheire_n with_o christ_n and_o they_o here_o be_v heavenly_a encouragement_n unto_o gospell-worship_n and_o gospell-conversation_n 1._o 2._o 4._o 3_o 7._o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n then_o if_o that_o gospell-worship_n be_v frequent_o perform_v to_o god_n under_o this_o endear_n consideration_n and_o in_o this_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a relation_n 3._o the_o apostle_n wish_v we_o grace_n and_o peace_n from_o god_n our_o father_n 2._o and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 3._o rom._n 1._o 7._o and_o in_o like_a manner_n 1_o cor._n 2._o 1_o 3._o 2_o cor._n 1._o 2._o 2._o observe_v that_o solemn_a form_n of_o thanksgiving_n 4._o bless_a be_v god_n 3_o even_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o father_n of_o mercy_n 3._o and_o the_o god_n of_o all_o comfort_n 2._o 2_o cor._n 1._o 3._o 2._o oh_o how_o willing_o and_o cheerful_o do_v we_o run_v to_o the_o god_n of_o all_o mercy_n and_o comfort_n in_o a_o time_n of_o temptation_n and_o affliction_n 27._o 2_o cor._n 1._o 4._o 3_o for_o the_o father_n discover_v his_o bowel_n of_o mercy_n on_o purpose_n to_o invite_v we_o to_o he_o the_o father_n himself_o love_v you_o john_n 16._o 27._o all_o spiritual_a glorious_a eternal_a blessing_n our_o election_n redemption_n salvation_n be_v ascribe_v to_o this_o father_n of_o all_o grace_n mercy_n comfort_n glory_n
he_o be_v call_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o service_n which_o he_o be_v to_o perform_v as_o mediator_n isa._n 42._o 1._o 2._o 3._o 4._o nothing_o be_v more_o clear_a than_o that_o there_o be_v some_o office_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o christ_n as_o a_o mediator_n which_o can_v be_v perform_v by_o christ_n as_o god_n because_o they_o do_v import_v some_o subjection_n as_o prayer_n unto_o god_n do_v though_o it_o be_v true_a that_o christ_n be_v the_o natural_a son_n of_o god_n do_v intercede_v after_o a_o authoritative_a manner_n we_o may_v for_o the_o far_o clear_n of_o this_o point_n resolve_v that_o grand_a question_n what_o the_o meaning_n of_o that_o request_n be_v when_o we_o say_v lord_n jesus_n pray_v for_o i_o the_o great_a doubt_n be_v whether_o this_o request_n be_v present_v to_o christ_n as_o god_n or_o as_o man_n the_o answer_n be_v god_n that_o if_o we_o look_v upon_o this_o petition_n as_o a_o duty_n perform_v by_o we_o this_o duty_n of_o prayer_n be_v direct_v unto_o jesus_n christ_n as_o god_n subjectum_fw-la for_o all_o divine_a worship_n be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o as_o have_v be_v prove_v but_o if_o we_o look_v not_o upon_o the_o duty_n of_o prayer_n but_o the_o matter_n of_o this_o prayer_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o business_n which_o we_o recommend_v to_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o he_o as_o man_n for_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o he_o as_o man_n to_o pray_v to_o the_o father_n yet_o because_o we_o desire_v he_o to_o intercede_v in_o a_o authoritative_a way_n to_o the_o father_n we_o do_v likewise_o request_v he_o to_o intercede_v as_o it_o become_v the_o natural_a and_o coessensiall_a son_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o if_o we_o look_v upon_o the_o whole_a business_n of_o intercession_n we_o conclude_v that_o he_o do_v intercede_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d as_o it_o become_v god-man_n because_o he_o be_v our_o mediator_n according_a to_o both_o nature_n divine_a and_o humane_a but_o then_o we_o must_v remember_v to_o reserve_v what_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o each_o nature_n for_o though_o we_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v a_o communication_n of_o all_o property_n belong_v to_o both_o nature_n unto_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n yet_o we_o must_v not_o attribute_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o humane_a nature_n which_o be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o the_o divine_a and_o it_o have_v be_v undeniable_o prove_v that_o divine_a worship_n be_v proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o the_o divine_a nature_n 5._o the_o office_n of_o our_o mediator_n have_v a_o special_a respect_n to_o god_n choose_v people_n by_o god_n most_o free_a decree_n but_o the_o relation_n and_o external_a denomination_n arise_v from_o thence_o can_v be_v the_o prime_n fundamental_a and_o immediate_a ground_n formal_a reason_n or_o adequate_a cause_n of_o divine_a worship_n for_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v god_n he_o can_v not_o have_v be_v capable_a of_o that_o office_n because_o nothing_o can_v satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n but_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n and_o what_o ever_o arise_v from_o the_o free_a decree_n of_o god_n be_v not_o necessary_a in_o itself_o but_o sure_o i_o be_o divine_a worship_n must_v be_v found_v upon_o what_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a and_o infinite_o perfect_a and_o therefore_o not_o upon_o external_a relation_n or_o denomination_n but_o upon_o the_o godhead_n itself_o 6._o the_o actual_a mediation_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v the_o prime_n and_o fundamental_a ground_n of_o divine_a worship_n for_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o worshipable_a but_o worship_v with_o divine_a honour_n before_o he_o do_v actual_o mediate_v as_o god-man_n 7._o the_o office_n of_o our_o mediator_n be_v to_o bring_v we_o to_o himself_o his_o father_n and_o holy_a spirit_n as_o to_o one_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o in_o who_o all_o our_o blessedness_n do_v consist_v and_o therefore_o our_o faith_n do_v not_o rest_v simple_o and_o final_o in_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v our_o mediator_n god_n and_o man_n but_o as_o he_o be_v one_o god_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n for_o by_o the_o ministry_n and_o mediation_n of_o christ_n as_o god-man_n we_o be_v bring_v to_o believe_v in_o god_n that_o our_o faith_n and_o hope_n may_v be_v in_o god_n 1_o pet._n 1._o 21._o christ_n be_v god_n by_o nature_n he_o be_v mediator_n by_o institution_n 31._o by_o a_o voluntary_a and_o gracious_a dispensation_n unto_o which_o he_o do_v condescend_v for_o our_o salvation_n and_o upon_o this_o account_n learned_a junius_n tell_v the_o subtle_a samosatenian_a that_o jesus_n christ_n as_o mediator_n bring_v we_o to_o himself_o as_o god_n and_o doctor_n voetius_fw-la say_v that_o christ_n as_o mediator_n be_v a_o inferior_a cause_n in_o who_o name_n and_o by_o who_o mediaation_n we_o make_v towards_o god_n our_o chief_a good_a in_o who_o we_o believe_v and_o who_o we_o do_v worship_n and_o adore_v as_o the_o first_o cause_n and_o last_o end_n john_n 14._o 6._o and_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o save_v they_o to_o the_o uttermost_a by_o his_o intercession_n who_o come_v unto_o god_n by_o he_o heb._n 7._o 25._o we_o worship_v christ_n and_o pray_v unto_o he_o say_v judicious_a pareus_n as_o one_o god_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o spirit_n the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o this_o worship_n be_v absolute_a and_o divine_a for_o it_o be_v the_o absolute_a worship_n of_o the_o godhead_n but_o then_o we_o call_v upon_o god_n in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v our_o mediator_n and_o we_o desire_v for_o to_o be_v hear_v for_o the_o satisfaction_n and_o intercession_n of_o that_o person_n who_o be_v god-man_n but_o the_o socinian_o conclude_v that_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v with_o divine_a honour_n as_o mediator_n than_o there_o be_v only_o a_o subordinate_a honour_n and_o worship_v due_a unto_o he_o to_o which_o we_o answer_v that_o christ_n may_v be_v consider_v four_o manner_n of_o way_n 1._o according_a to_o his_o godhead_n and_o divine_a person_n christ._n and_o it_o have_v be_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o this_o treatise_n that_o there_o be_v divine_a honour_n due_a unto_o the_o godhead_n and_o divine_a person_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o this_o be_v his_o essential_a infinite_a glory_n 2._o christ_n may_v be_v consider_v as_o mediator_n according_a to_o both_o nature_n as_o god-man_n by_o a_o gracious_a condescension_n and_o personal_a union_n and_o so_o we_o say_v there_o be_v a_o mediatory_a glory_n due_a unto_o he_o mediator_n which_o be_v more_o illustrious_a in_o regard_n of_o its_o manifestation_n since_o the_o alteration_n of_o his_o condition_n from_o a_o state_n of_o humiliation_n to_o a_o state_n of_o exaltation_n objectum_fw-la this_o glory_n do_v outshine_v all_o the_o glory_n of_o saint_n &_o angel_n in_o heaven_n but_o it_o be_v different_a from_o that_o natural_a and_o essential_a glory_n which_o be_v common_a to_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o one_o god_n for_o that_o essential_a glory_n can_v be_v communicate_v to_o the_o humane_a nature_n no_o not_o since_o its_o assumption_n and_o christ_n exaltation_n trinitate_fw-la this_o mediatory_a honour_n be_v very_o glorious_a because_o christ_n sit_v as_o a_o king_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n on_o high_a and_o every_o one_o must_v confess_v that_o our_o royal_a mediator_n be_v not_o only_a man_n but_o god_n also_o yet_o we_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o since_o the_o exaltation_n of_o our_o king_n the_o glory_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n his_o essential_a glory_n be_v only_o more_o manifest_v whereas_o it_o be_v eclipse_v before_o in_o the_o state_n of_o humiliation_n and_o the_o humane_a nature_n assume_v be_v only_o more_o perfect_v and_o not_o transubstantiate_v into_o the_o divine_a the_o humane_a nature_n be_v still_o a_o creature_n though_o it_o have_v gain_v as_o much_o glory_n as_o it_o be_v capable_a of_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o personal_a union_n and_o glory_n of_o exaltation_n and_o be_v a_o creature_n can_v be_v capable_a of_o divine_a and_o infinite_a perfection_n which_o be_v the_o formal_a object_n of_o divine_a adoration_n trinitate_fw-la even_o as_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o our_o mediator_n notwithstanding_o the_o personal_a union_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o any_o humane_a imperfection_n for_o there_o be_v a_o preservation_n and_o distinction_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n notwithstanding_o their_o intimate_a and_o inseparable_a union_n in_o one_o person_n the_o nature_n be_v unite_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d as_o the_o greek_a church_n of_o old_a the_o action_n perform_v by_o our_o royal_a mediator_n flow_v from_o a_o double_a principle_n in_o this_o single_a person_n because_o this_o person_n do_v consist_v of_o two_o nature_n and_o each_o nature_n perform_v its_o proper_a work_n the_o divine_a nature_n do_v what_o be_v divine_a and_o the_o humane_a
nature_n what_o be_v humane_a and_o therefore_o though_o the_o person_n be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o effect_n one_o yet_o there_o be_v two_o different_a action_n of_o two_o different_a nature_n unite_v in_o one_o person_n for_o produce_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o glorious_a effect_n and_o we_o be_v to_o give_v to_o each_o nature_n what_o be_v proper_o due_a unto_o it_o final_o the_o kingdom_n which_o be_v administer_v by_o our_o royal_a mediator_n god-man_n in_o a_o glorious_a way_n be_v but_o a_o dispensatory_a kingdom_n not_o his_o natural_a kingdom_n a_o inferior_a and_o temporary_a kingdom_n not_o his_o sovereign_a essential_a eternal_a kingdom_n 100_o and_o therefore_o even_o in_o the_o very_a administration_n of_o it_o our_o mediator_n god-man_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o order_n and_o that_o gracious_a dispensation_n unto_o which_o he_o condescend_v for_o our_o salvation_n employ_v in_o a_o kind_n of_o subordinate_a way_n and_o when_o he_o have_v accomplish_v that_o work_n for_o which_o he_o undertake_v this_o royal_a office_n he_o will_v refigne_v this_o dispensatory_a kingdom_n and_o become_v subject_a as_o man_n and_o as_o head_n of_o that_o body_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v to_o his_o father_n himself_z and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o one_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o that_o god_n may_v be_v all_o in_o all_o 1_o cor._n 15._o 28._o for_o as_o we_o be_v christ_n so_o christ_n be_v god_n 1_o cor._n 3._o 23._o in_o that_o safe_a sense_n and_o subordinate_a way_n which_o we_o have_v but_o even_o now_o declare_v that_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n which_o humble_v and_o as_o it_o be_v empty_v itself_o in_o the_o administration_n of_o this_o subordinate_a temporary_a and_o dispensatory_a kingdom_n yet_o with_o the_o preservation_n of_o its_o natural_a and_o eternal_a right_n may_v be_v more_o glorious_o manifest_v by_o the_o full_a possession_n use_n and_o enjoyment_n of_o that_o natural_a divine_a eternal_a kingdom_n which_o do_v belong_v to_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n for_o all_o three_o coessential_a and_o coequal_a person_n reign_v with_o the_o same_o power_n wendelinus_n majesty_n and_o glory_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n and_o common_a act_n in_o all_o and_o over_o all_o infinite_o and_o immutable_o from_o everlasting_a to_o everlasting_a although_o the_o natural_a reign_n of_o jesus_n christ_n will_v not_o be_v so_o full_o and_o glorious_o manifest_v until_o he_o have_v resign_v his_o dispensatory_a kingdom_n and_o bring_v all_o his_o elect_n notwithstanding_o all_o their_o want_n sin_n infirmity_n temptation_n trial_n enemy_n safe_a to_o heaven_n this_o dispensatory_a kingdom_n be_v administer_v principal_o by_o the_o godhead_n instrumental_o by_o the_o manhood_n absolute_o and_o perfect_o by_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n act_v in_o a_o divine_a way_n as_o god_n and_o humane_a way_n as_o man_n that_o the_o property_n of_o each_o nature_n may_v be_v reserve_v as_o peculiar_a to_o each_o even_o while_o he_o do_v mediate_v reign_n and_o judge_n according_a to_o both_o and_o therefore_o divine_a honour_n be_v still_o reserve_v as_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o the_o divine_a nature_n of_o our_o mediator_n who_o be_v god-man_n in_o one_o person_n this_o definite_a and_o dispensatory_a kingdom_n be_v changeable_a terminable_a it_o do_v begin_v with_o the_o first_o foundation_n and_o will_v end_v with_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n christ_n be_v a_o mediator_n from_o all_o eternity_n in_o the_o 6_o decree_n of_o god_n he_o be_v actual_o give_v to_o be_v a_o mediator_n as_o soon_o as_o 8._o necessity_n require_v he_o be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n in_o the_o 5_o fullness_n of_o time_n and_o will_v 25._o cease_v to_o be_v a_o king_n in_o this_o mediatory_a and_o dispensatory_a kingdom_n when_o he_o have_v finish_v his_o work_n and_o save_v his_o church_n idem_fw-la now_o nothing_o be_v more_o clear_a than_o this_o that_o christ_n be_v now_o subject_a to_o his_o father_n in_o all_o respect_n in_o which_o he_o shall_v be_v declare_v to_o be_v subject_a when_o he_o give_v up_o his_o dispensatory_a kingdom_n and_o we_o be_v not_o to_o worship_n jesus_n christ_n with_o divine_a worship_n as_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o his_o father_n but_o as_o he_o be_v equal_a to_o his_o father_n as_o he_o be_v indeed_o one_o god_n with_o his_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 3_o christ_n may_v be_v consider_v as_o head_n of_o that_o body_n unto_o which_o he_o have_v unite_v himself_o church_n and_o which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o dear_a blood_n and_o so_o we_o know_v christ_n the_o head_n and_o his_o body_n the_o church_n make_v up_o one_o christ_n mystical_a mystical_a the_o glory_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o head_n be_v exceed_o great_a and_o be_v excellent_o describe_v ephes._n 1._o 20_o 21_o 22_o 23._o christ_n be_v set_v at_o god_n own_o right_a hand_n in_o heavenly_a place_n far_o above_o all_o principality_n mysterio_fw-la power_n and_o might_n and_o dominion_n and_o every_o name_n that_o be_v name_v not_o only_o in_o this_o world_n but_o also_o in_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v and_o have_v put_v all_o thing_n under_o his_o foot_n &_o give_v he_o to_o bethe_o head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n the_o fullness_n of_o he_o that_o fill_v all_o in_o all_o now_o christ_n mystical_a the_o head_n and_o body_n whole_a christ_n mystical_a be_v to_o be_v subject_v to_o god_n when_o the_o mediatory_a and_o dispensatory_a kingdom_n be_v resign_v and_o therefore_o if_o you_o take_v christ_n âs_v the_o apostle_n do_v 1_o cor._n 12._o 12._o for_o the_o head_n and_o body_n for_o christ_n mystical_a we_o say_v that_o head_n and_o member_n be_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o father_n junius_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n as_o one_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o 4._o christ_n may_v be_v consider_v according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n man_n and_o we_o be_v bold_a to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o eminent_a and_o transcendent_a glory_n vouchsafe_v to_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o personal_a union_n christ._n and_o the_o glory_n of_o its_o exaltation_n the_o glory_n of_o christ_n divine_a nature_n be_v more_o manifest_v but_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n be_v full_o perfect_v by_o his_o exaltation_n and_o therefore_o the_o humane_a nature_n be_v exalt_v in_o a_o peculiar_a sense_n 5_o no_o nature_n not_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o most_o glorious_a angel_n be_v ever_o so_o high_o prefer_v in_o these_o two_o respect_n 1._o in_o respect_n of_o personal_a union_n with_o the_o godhead_n 102._o act_v 2_o 36._o 2._o in_o respect_n of_o royal_a mediation_n between_o god_n and_o man_n none_o but_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o mary_n be_v ever_o so_o high_o honour_v as_o to_o be_v take_v into_o the_o society_n and_o fellowship_n of_o the_o mediatory_a office_n with_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n 1_o tim._n 2._o 5._o who_o be_v god_n as_o well_o as_o man_n nec_fw-la honorem_fw-la a_o nobis_fw-la deus_fw-la nisi_fw-la per_fw-la deum_fw-la accipit_fw-la but_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o the_o humane_a nature_n remain_v a_o creature_n still_o even_o after_o its_o assumption_n and_o exaltation_n and_o therefore_o we_o hold_v fast_o our_o first_o conclusion_n that_o the_o divine_a and_o infinite_a excellency_n of_o the_o coessential_a son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o prime_n and_o fundamental_a ground_n the_o formal_a reason_n and_o cause_n of_o that_o divine_a worship_n which_o be_v due_a to_o our_o mediator_n jesus_n christ_n socino_n jesus_n christ_n our_o only_a saviour_n by_o doctrine_n merit_n and_o efficacy_n by_o confirmation_n and_o communication_n true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n consider_v in_o itself_o be_v terrible_a propheta_fw-la it_o be_v a_o light_n not_o to_o be_v approach_v unto_o and_o therefore_o the_o word_n be_v make_v man_n that_o we_o may_v have_v encouragement_n to_o come_v unto_o god_n resurrectione_n not_o only_o by_o the_o mediation_n of_o a_o man_n full_a of_o grace_n and_o truth_n but_o by_o the_o mediation_n of_o he_o who_o be_v god_n bless_v for_o ever_o because_o a_o mere_a man_n though_o free_a from_o corruption_n and_o fill_v with_o grace_n can_v not_o by_o reason_n of_o such_o natural_a infirmity_n as_o be_v not_o sinful_a perform_v the_o office_n of_o a_o foundation_n head_n and_o spouse_n in_o uphold_v 31._o quicken_a and_o preserve_v of_o his_o church_n act._n 20_o 28._o ephes._n 1._o 23._o &_o 1_o thes._n 1._o 10._o heb._n 9_o 14._o 15._o that_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o eternal_a god_n with_o the_o father_n have_v be_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o this_o treatise_n and_o therefore_o divine_a honour_n and_o worship_n be_v due_a to_o christ_n &_o
the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o father_n himself_o because_o all_o three_o be_v coessential_a coequal_a and_o coeternal_a when_o the_o seven_o electour_n of_o the_o empire_n meet_v at_o frankford_n about_o the_o election_n of_o maximilian_n the_o second_o 3._o some_o of_o they_o be_v strict_a protestant_n go_v out_o of_o the_o place_n of_o worship_n when_o the_o mass_n begin_v because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v present_a at_o that_o idolatrous_a service_n but_o come_v in_o again_o when_o they_o sing_v come_v holy_a ghost_n eternal_a god_n we_o be_v then_o convince_v by_o clear_a scripture_n that_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n with_o the_o father_n we_o must_v glorify_v all_o three_o person_n as_o one_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o 1._o we_o must_v not_o do_v any_o divine_a service_n to_o they_o who_o be_v not_o god_n by_o nature_n 19_o gal._n 4._o 8._o but_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n have_v the_o selfsame_a divine_a nature_n and_o therefore_o the_o very_a same_o divine_a worship_n and_o service_n both_o for_o kind_n and_o degree_n be_v due_a to_o all_o three_o coessential_a person_n we_o must_v not_o conceive_v otherwise_o of_o god_n than_o he_o have_v reveal_v himself_o in_o his_o word_n for_o than_o we_o shall_v not_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n but_o a_o mere_a fantastical_a idol_n of_o our_o own_o brain_n you_o worship_v you_o know_v not_o what_o say_v christ_n of_o the_o samaritan_n joh._n 4._o 22._o the_o samaritan_n serve_v their_o own_o god_n who_o be_v not_o god_n by_o nature_n but_o false_a go_n 2_o king_n 17._o 29._o 33._o 2._o nor_o must_v we_o give_v father_n worship_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n the_o only_a true_a god_n any_o other_o kind_n of_o worship_n then_o what_o be_v prescribe_v in_o his_o word_n 3._o israel_n be_v say_v to_o be_v without_o the_o true_a god_n when_o they_o be_v without_o the_o law_n without_o a_o priest_n to_o teach_v they_o how_o to_o worship_n god_n according_a to_o his_o law_n 2_o chron._n 15._o 3._o now_o for_o a_o long_a season_n israel_n have_v be_v without_o the_o true_a god_n and_o without_o a_o teach_a priest_n and_o without_o law_n the_o divine_a kind_n of_o worship_n prescribe_v both_o in_o law_n and_o gospel_n be_v spiritual_a worship_n worship_n mark_n 12_o 33._o heb._n 12._o 28._o psal._n 51._o 6_o 16._o deut._n 6._o 5._o 1_o cor._n 5._o 8._o 1_o chron_n 28._o 9_o phil._n 3._o 3_o joh._n 4._o 23_o 24._o 3._o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v either_o natural_a or_o institute_v worship_n change_v the_o institute_v worship_n have_v be_v change_v for_o it_o be_v different_a before_o the_o law_n under_o the_o law_n and_o under_o the_o gospel_n but_o the_o natural_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n be_v perpetual_a and_o eternal_a it_o be_v to_o be_v continue_v in_o heaven_n both_o by_o saint_n and_o angel_n for_o evermore_o natural_a worship_n be_v due_a to_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n unchangedble_a because_o they_o have_v one_o and_o the_o selfsame_a divine_a nature_n with_o god_n the_o father_n angel_n be_v call_v upon_o to_o give_v this_o natural_a worship_n to_o jesus_n christ._n and_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o heb._n 1_o 6._o 4._o institute_v worship_n be_v subservient_fw-fr worship_n as_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v to_o this_o natural_a worship_n for_o when_o we_o worship_v god_n with_o those_o mean_a help_n and_o action_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v appoint_v and_o ordain_v we_o must_v worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n institution_n all_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n be_v mean_n of_o grace_n to_o beget_v knowledge_n faith_n hope_n love_n self-denial_n gratitude_n humility_n sincerity_n reverence_n zeal_n and_o all_o other_o grace_n in_o the_o soul_n and_o to_o increase_v they_o in_o we_o that_o we_o may_v exercise_v all_o these_o grace_n upon_o every_o opportunity_n and_o give_v god_n that_o natural_a spiritual_a divine_a honour_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o his_o singular_a majesty_n infinite_a excellency_n independent_a perfection_n and_o eternal_a godhead_n in_o know_v esteem_v admire_a believe_a love_a obey_v god_n that_o our_o soul_n may_v be_v delight_v and_o satisfy_v with_o god_n as_o the_o chief_a good_a as_o the_o crown_n of_o all_o our_o joy_n a_o all-sufficient_a portion_n of_o our_o soul_n for_o evermore_o this_o be_v the_o full_a scope_n of_o the_o first_o table_n of_o the_o law_n gospel_n and_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o the_o first_o table_n of_o the_o law_n do_v discover_v to_o we_o 1._o the_o object_n of_o worship_n 2._o the_o mean_n of_o worship_n 3._o the_o time_n of_o worship_n and_o do_v not_o also_o prescribe_v require_v enjoin_v 4._o the_o manner_n of_o worship_n we_o shall_v be_v at_o a_o loss_n the_o law_n will_v not_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n our_o worship_n will_v not_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o nature_n and_o will_n of_o god_n god_n will_v be_v defraud_v of_o his_o natural_a spiritual_a divine_a worship_n and_o therefore_o when_o our_o saviour_n do_v deliver_v the_o full_a scope_n of_o all_o the_o four_o first_o commandment_n by_o reduce_v they_o to_o one_o commandment_n commandment_n he_o say_v thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n 38._o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o mind_n this_o be_v the_o first_o and_o great_a commandment_n 5._o mat_n 22._o 37_o 38._o deut._n 6._o 4_o 5._o this_o spiritual_a worship_n be_v teach_v we_o in_o every_o commandment_n of_o the_o first_o table_n if_o we_o look_v upon_o the_o inside_n and_o spiritual_a compass_n of_o those_o commandment_n discover_v to_o we_o by_o moses_n the_o psalm_n prophet_n and_o the_o new-testament_n 1._o in_o the_o first_o commandment_n we_o be_v not_o bare_o require_v for_o to_o take_v god_n for_o the_o object_n of_o our_o worship_n but_o to_o give_v he_o spiritual_a worship_n also_o 4._o because_o we_o be_v require_v in_o mind_n heart_n will_n affection_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o all_o these_o to_o take_v the_o true_a god_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n god_n in_o christ_n by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v our_o god_n to_o know_v esteem_v admire_v trust_v love_n reverence_n adore_v and_o serve_v he_o with_o hope_n humility_n self-deniall_n patience_n joy_n and_o thankfulness_n zealâ_n and_o constancy_n this_o be_v the_o inside_n and_o spiritual_a compass_n of_o the_o first_o commandment_n 2._o in_o the_o second_o commandment_n we_o be_v require_v to_o worship_n god_n pure_o according_a to_o his_o will_n in_o every_o ordinance_n without_o any_o carnal_a imagination_n commandment_n or_o affection_n the_o papist_n will_v grant_v that_o we_o be_v by_o the_o use_n of_o ordinance_n and_o as_o they_o dream_v image_n also_o to_o carry_v our_o heart_n to_o god_n and_o christ_n in_o obedience_n to_o the_o second_o commandment_n 24._o the_o more_o learned_a papist_n will_v confess_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n against_o the_o first_o commandment_n to_o terminate_v our_o worship_n in_o any_o image_n 25._o because_o no_o image_n be_v jehovah_n 29_o but_o they_o worship_v image_n relatiuè_fw-la though_o not_o terminatiuè_v as_o visible_a help_n to_o devotion_n to_o carry_v their_o heart_n to_o god_n in_o worship_n 40._o and_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o jew_n and_o heathen_n of_o old_a intend_v no_o more_o 2._o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v as_o much_o to_o be_v say_v for_o heathenish_a and_o jewish_a as_o there_o be_v for_o romish_a idolatry_n commandment_n this_o then_o be_v the_o great_a sin_n of_o the_o antichristian_a worshipper_n at_o rome_n who_o endeavour_n to_o defend_v this_o relative_n worship_n of_o image_n that_o they_o conceive_v that_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n will_v be_v better_o carry_v to_o god_n and_o christ_n by_o humane_a invention_n such_o as_o image_n crucifix_n relic_n etc._n etc._n then_o by_o divine_a institution_n and_o this_o sin_n be_v call_v a_o hatred_n of_o god_n in_o the_o second_o commandment_n and_o in_o the_o very_a letter_n of_o this_o commandment_n we_o be_v direct_v how_o to_o express_v our_o love_n to_o god_n namely_o by_o seek_v of_o he_o and_o close_v with_o he_o in_o his_o own_o ordinance_n and_o institution_n with_o a_o ingenuous_a contempt_n of_o humane_a invention_n in_o divine_a worship_n and_o service_n and_o though_o legal_a ordinance_n be_v not_o only_o changeable_a but_o actual_o change_v and_o abolish_v yet_o there_o be_v something_o moral_a and_o unchangeable_a in_o this_o second_o commandment_n which_o be_v attendance_n upon_o and_o observance_n of_o the_o institution_n and_o appointment_n of_o god_n commandment_n it_o be_v a_o immutable_a law_n that_o we_o shall_v give_v god_n that_o worship_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o express_v our_o say_v in_o he_o and_o love_n to_o he_o by_o a_o spiritual_a use_n of_o such_o mean_n
grace_n and_o peace_n from_o this_o coessential_a trinunity_n trinunity_n the_o father_n the_o seven_o spirit_n and_o jesus_n christ_n do_v sufficient_o instruct_v we_o in_o this_o mystery_n of_o evangelicall_n worship_n integra_fw-la some_o object_n that_o then_o the_o spirit_n will_v be_v set_v before_o the_o son_n but_o the_o answer_n be_v easy_a that_o there_o be_v a_o metathesis_n in_o the_o word_n and_o it_o be_v observable_a that_o the_o son_n be_v sometime_o name_v before_o the_o father_n 2_o cor._n 13._o 14._o and_o sometime_o the_o spirit_n be_v name_v before_o the_o son_n as_o rev._n 1._o 4._o 1_o pet._n 1_o 2._o and_o sometime_o the_o natural_a order_n be_v observe_v the_o father_n be_v name_v first_o the_o son_n second_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n three_o the_o natural_a order_n be_v not_o overthrow_v when_o the_o father_n be_v name_v after_o the_o son_n or_o the_o spirit_n before_o the_o son_n nor_o be_v the_o equality_n of_o person_n overthrow_v when_o the_o natural_a order_n be_v observe_v and_o therefore_o that_o objection_n be_v not_o considerable_a natural_a worship_n be_v due_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o he_o have_v the_o same_o divine_a nature_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n creature_n that_o divine_a faith_n be_v due_a to_o the_o spirit_n have_v be_v prove_v at_o large_a that_o divine_a love_n be_v due_a to_o he_o be_v clear_a rom._n 15._o 30._o i_o beseech_v you_o for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n sake_n and_o for_o the_o love_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o spirit_n be_v the_o author_n 11._o and_o object_n of_o all_o those_o grace_n which_o be_v call_v divine_a ex_fw-la parte_fw-la objecti_fw-la faith_n 6._o hope_n and_o love_n 2._o rom._n 15._o 13_o 16_o 30._o 5_o in_o a_o word_n spirit_n institute_v worship_n be_v due_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o virtue_n of_o both_o sacrament_n mat._n 28._o 19_o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v all_o baptize_v into_o one_o body_n and_o have_v be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n sacrament_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 13._o 2_o cor._n 13._o 14._o mat._n 3._o 11._o joh._n 5._o 5._o in_o hear_v of_o the_o word_n we_o must_v hearken_v to_o the_o spirit_n with_o the_o selfsame_a attention_n devotion_n as_o we_o do_v to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n god_n heb._n 3._o 7_o 8._o 29._o compare_v with_o ps._n 95._o the_o holy_a ghost_n forbid_v we_o to_o harden_v our_o heart_n against_o himself_o speak_v in_o the_o word_n 13._o act_v 7._o 51._o we_o grieve_v the_o spirit_n when_o we_o resist_v the_o spirit_n and_o will_v not_o put_v our_o seal_n to_o the_o word_n by_o a_o spiritual_a assent_n and_o fiducial_a consent_n and_o hinder_v the_o spirit_n from_o seal_v up_o our_o election_n and_o redemption_n to_o we_o for_o though_o christ_n make_v the_o purchase_n yet_o the_o spirit_n make_v the_o assurance_n 1_o john_n 3._o 24._o john_n 14._o 16_o 17._o john_n 15._o 26._o in_o prayer_n we_o be_v to_o call_v upon_o the_o holy_a ghost_n prayer_n 2_o cor._n 13._o 14._o rev._n 1._o 4._o because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n 1_o cor._n 12_o 6_o 11._o act._n 5._o 3_o 4._o i_o can_v but_o wonder_v at_o they_o who_o say_v that_o holy_a and_o spiritual_a worship_n be_v not_o due_a to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n when_o the_o truth_n be_v we_o can_v give_v no_o worship_n at_o all_o to_o the_o father_n or_o the_o son_n until_o we_o be_v enable_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n rom._n 5._o 5._o 1_o cor._n 12._o 3._o 2_o cor._n 4._o 13._o 2_o cor._n 13._o 14._o and_o when_o gospell-worship_n by_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o spirit_n we_o have_v communion_n with_o the_o father_n and_o son_n in_o gospell-worship_n we_o be_v the_o temple_n not_o only_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o of_o the_o coessential_a trinunity_n of_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n all_o three_o do_v dwell_v in_o we_o walk_v in_o we_o spirit_n and_o abide_v in_o we_o for_o when_o we_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n he_o abide_v with_o we_o dwell_v in_o we_o persuade_v and_o enable_v we_o to_o love_n god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o then_o all_o three_o coessential_a person_n make_v their_o abode_n with_o we_o as_o be_v clear_o hold_v forth_o to_o we_o joh._n 14._o 16_o 17_o 23._o 2_o cor._n 6._o 16_o 18_o 1_o cor._n 3._o 16._o ephes._n 3._o 16_o 17._o but_o if_o a_o man_n have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n he_o have_v no_o save_v interest_n as_o yet_o in_o jesus_n christ._n rom._n 8._o 9_o christ._n because_o he_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o regeneration_n or_o adoption_n he_o be_v not_o a_o member_n of_o jesus_n christ_n he_o be_v not_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o do_v not_o worship_v this_o coessential_a trinunity_n as_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n he_o who_o have_v the_o spirit_n in_o he_o do_v worship_n the_o spirit_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n because_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o high_a even_o as_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o high_a a_o personal_a power_n luk._n 1._o 32_o 35._o compare_v the_o spirit_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o elohim_n gen._n 1._o 2._o the_o spirit_n of_o jehova_n isa._n 11._o 2._o the_o god_n of_o israel_n 2_o sam._n 23._o 2_o 3._o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v god_n 1_o cor._n 2._o 11._o 12._o act_n 5._o 3_o 4._o this_o point_n have_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n and_o therefore_o i_o need_v say_v no_o more_o consider_v that_o the_o socinian_o have_v no_o argument_n which_o be_v considerable_a when_o compare_v with_o these_o plain_a place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o those_o many_o place_n and_o proof_n which_o have_v be_v former_o produce_v in_o this_o treatise_n if_o any_o desire_n to_o have_v their_o argument_n such_o as_o they_o be_v answer_v at_o large_a he_o may_v read_v mr._n estwicks_n learned_a treatise_n concern_v the_o godhead_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n late_o publish_v i_o proceed_v to_o the_o three_o part_n of_o godliness_n godliness_n which_o be_v obedience_n 3._o obedience_n be_v due_a to_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n all_o three_o coessential_a person_n person_n because_o they_o be_v coessential_a because_o they_o be_v one_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o 1._o obedience_n be_v due_a to_o god_n the_o father_n this_o truth_n be_v general_o acknowledge_v by_o all_o that_o be_v not_o atheist_n father_n the_o jew_n and_o socinian_o subscribe_v to_o it_o if_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v god_n the_o father_n to_o be_v the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o our_o father_n in_o he_o the_o inference_n will_v be_v immediate_a clear_a and_o strong_a that_o we_o ought_v to_o honour_n and_o obey_v our_o heavenly_a father_n for_o how_o shall_v god_n put_v we_o among_o his_o child_n unless_o every_o one_o of_o we_o say_v unto_o he_o my_o father_n my_o father_n i_o do_v obey_v thou_o and_o will_v not_o depart_v from_o thou_o but_o i_o say_v how_o shall_v i_o put_v thou_o among_o the_o child_n and_o give_v thou_o a_o pleasant_a land_n a_o goodly_a heritage_n of_o the_o host_n of_o nation_n and_o i_o say_v thou_o shall_v call_v i_o my_o father_n and_o shall_v not_o turn_v away_o from_o i_o jer._n 3._o 19_o and_o when_o god_n speak_v to_o they_o as_o to_o child_n they_o present_o submit_v return_v you_o backslide_v child_n and_o i_o will_v heal_v your_o backslide_n they_o present_o reply_v behold_v we_o come_v unto_o thou_o for_o thou_o be_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n jer._n 3._o 22._o a_o son_n honour_v his_o father_n if_o then_o i_o be_v a_o father_n where_o be_v my_o honour_n mal._n 1._o 6._o mal._n 2._o 16._o mat._n 12._o 50._o mat._n 23._o 9_o when_o god_n be_v consider_v under_o this_o endear_n relation_n of_o a_o father_n we_o yield_v a_o filial_a obedience_n unto_o god_n obedience_n we_o perform_v a_o foederall_a obedience_n a_o sincere_a and_o evangelicall_n obedience_n 1._o i_o say_v jehovah_n will_v be_v your_o god_n 14._o i_o will_v be_v your_o father_n have_v these_o promise_n say_v the_o apostle_n let_v we_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o the_o flesh_n 19_o and_o spirit_n 4._o perfect_a holiness_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n 13_o 2_o cor._n 6._o 16_o 18_o 40._o 2_o cor._n 71._o 1_o pet._n 1_o 14_o 17_o 18._o 16._o as_o we_o be_v to_o worship_n god_n in_o this_o fatherly_a relation_n 50_o mat._n 6._o 9_o gal._n 4._o â_o so_o be_v we_o to_o obey_v he_o also_o 9_o whosoever_o shall_v do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n 5._o etc._n etc._n mat._n 12._o 50._o that_o all_o three_o coessential_a person_n be_v our_o father_n 63._o have_v be_v prove_v already_o in_o this_o very_a chapter_n 10._o pag._n 326_o 327._o and_o that_o
holy_a in_o life_n we_o can_v never_o understand_v the_o presence_n knowledge_n institution_n and_o mind_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o ordinance_n unless_o we_o believe_v the_o curse_a condition_n of_o man_n in_o their_o natural_a estate_n the_o divine_a nature_n and_o person_n of_o christ_n the_o greatness_n of_o the_o price_n that_o be_v pay_v for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o god_n justice_n and_o appease_v of_o god_n wrath_n who_o do_v not_o spare_v his_o own_o coessential_a son_n but_o manifest_v his_o hatred_n against_o sin_n and_o love_n to_o his_o elect_n in_o not_o spare_v his_o son_n but_o break_v his_o body_n and_o shed_n of_o his_o blood_n that_o we_o may_v be_v redeem_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o mystery_n which_o be_v make_v sensible_a in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o be_v real_o evident_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n real_a gal._n 3._o 1._o and_o whosoever_o look_v upon_o these_o great_a mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o fancy_n and_o do_v not_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v real_a thing_n true_o exhibit_v real_o present_v to_o believer_n in_o a_o sacramental_a mystical_a 63._o spiritual_a way_n in_o this_o ordinance_n have_v not_o yet_o learn_v the_o truth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o jesus_n and_o be_v not_o prepare_v for_o such_o high_a communion_n we_o christian_n do_v not_o come_v with_o hungry_a and_o thirsty_a soul_n long_v after_o far_a communion_n with_o christ_n for_o mortify_v of_o our_o lust_n soul_n and_o increase_v of_o all_o our_o grace_n by_o his_o spirit_n until_o we_o believe_v this_o grand_a mystery_n of_o faith_n and_o we_o be_v then_o experimental_o acquaint_v with_o the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n when_o we_o have_v be_v make_v drink_n into_o one_o spirit_n with_o christ_n and_o his_o member_n when_o we_o look_v upon_o he_o who_o we_o have_v pierce_v by_o our_o sin_n and_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o natural_a and_o coessential_a son_n of_o god_n there_o can_v be_v none_o of_o those_o fiducial_a breathe_n after_o christ_n penitential_a melt_n before_o he_o or_o obediential_a closing_n with_o he_o as_o be_v evident_a by_o our_o nine_o chapter_n until_o we_o do_v in_o some_o measure_n believe_v this_o mystery_n of_o faith_n and_o understand_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v seal_v in_o this_o sacrament_n by_o god_n and_o must_v be_v actual_o renew_v by_o every_o good_a communicant_a our_o meditation_n faith_n love_n repentance_n joy_n thankfulness_n will_v not_o be_v right_o place_v or_o exercise_v if_o this_o grand_a mystery_n of_o faith_n and_o godliness_n be_v reject_v by_o we_o 6._o i_o may_v argue_v from_o all_o the_o office_n of_o christ_n they_o who_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o divine_a nature_n of_o christ_n christ._n do_v utter_o disable_v jesus_n christ_n from_o be_v a_o mediator_n a_o priest_n a_o prophet_n a_o king_n for_o the_o save_n of_o his_o people_n to_o the_o uttermost_a they_o who_o deny_v the_o divine_a essence_n and_o person_n of_o christ_n do_v deny_v his_o satisfaction_n to_o be_v all-sufficient_a in_o our_o behalf_n they_o depose_v christ_n from_o that_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a kingdom_n which_o he_o have_v by_o nature_n and_o render_v he_o uncapable_a of_o that_o mediatory_a kingdom_n which_o be_v delegated_a to_o christ_n god_n man_n by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o coessential_a trinunity_n but_o i_o have_v say_v enough_o of_o that_o in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o book_n i_o pass_v on_o to_o inquire_v what_o civil_a respect_n be_v due_a to_o such_o as_o do_v deny_v the_o divine_a nature_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o holy_a spirit_n that_o one_o text_n to_o my_o apprehension_n respect_n 2_o joh._n 9_o 10_o 11._o contain_v a_o very_a full_a and_o satisfactory_a answer_n whosoever_o transgress_v and_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o god_n he_o that_o abide_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n he_o have_v both_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n if_o there_o come_v any_o unto_o you_o and_o bring_v not_o this_o doctrine_n receive_v he_o not_o into_o your_o house_n neither_o bid_v he_o god_n speed_n for_o he_o that_o bid_v he_o god_n speed_n be_v partaker_n of_o his_o evil_a deed_n but_o that_o this_o point_n may_v be_v more_o clear_o state_v and_o all_o mistake_v prevent_v be_v please_v to_o consider_v 1._o that_o such_o point_n of_o religion_n and_o worship_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o believe_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o christian_a conscience_n spiritual_a save_v communion_n with_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n be_v clear_o deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o truth_n 2._o that_o if_o man_n who_o be_v former_o unblameable_a in_o their_o life_n and_o conversation_n be_v seduce_v into_o any_o error_n which_o do_v contradict_v or_o subvert_v such_o fundamental_a point_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v instruct_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n in_o a_o christian_a and_o brotherly_a way_n 3._o they_o be_v to_o be_v admonish_v with_o all_o faithfulness_n and_o meekness_n of_o wisdom_n twice_o or_o thrice_o that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o importance_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v deny_v the_o danger_n of_o the_o error_n maintain_v the_o sad_a consequence_n of_o both_o that_o if_o their_o conscience_n be_v not_o fear_v they_o may_v return_v from_o their_o belove_a and_o damn_a error_n 4._o if_o after_o all_o this_o meekness_n patience_n and_o forbearance_n all_o christian_a instruction_n and_o brotherly_a admonition_n they_o do_v as_o man_n that_o be_v judicial_o blind_v for_o sin_v against_o conscience_n 1._o persist_v in_o their_o error_n 2_o reject_v and_o revile_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n in_o these_o high_a and_o necessary_a point_n 3._o fall_v from_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n frustrate_v the_o grace_n and_o covenant_n of_o god_n evacuate_v the_o death_n of_o christ_n depose_v christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n from_o their_o throne_n and_o godhead_n 4._o seduce_v and_o poison_v other_o mat._n 21._o 38._o 5._o deny_v and_o overthrow_v the_o foundation_n of_o divine_a faith_n hope_n love_n and_o justification_n by_o faith_n and_o the_o adequate_a object_n also_o of_o all_o christian_a faith_n evangelicall_n worship_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n these_o bold_a atheist_n for_o they_o deny_v the_o only_a true_a god_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n may_v without_o any_o scruple_n be_v reject_v from_o christian_a communion_n 11._o for_o there_o be_v certain_o some_o lust_n or_o other_o which_o hinder_v they_o from_o see_v the_o truth_n 35._o or_o profess_v that_o they_o do_v see_v it_o and_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v take_v for_o grant_v that_o these_o man_n be_v obstinate_a self-condemned_n man_n man_n that_o combine_v with_o their_o will_n and_o lust_n against_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o clear_a shine_a scripture_n and_o therefore_o these_o man_n can_v complain_v that_o they_o be_v punish_v for_o their_o conscience_n when_o they_o be_v indeed_o punish_v for_o sin_v against_o their_o conscience_n because_o they_o be_v condemn_v by_o their_o own_o conscience_n but_o it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o such_o man_n to_o be_v find_v as_o i_o have_v describe_v ob._n to_o which_o i_o answer_v sol._n be_v please_v but_o to_o consider_v what_o have_v be_v deliver_v in_o this_o very_a chapter_n already_o conscience_n and_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o forego_n chapter_n and_o with_o the_o many_o blasphemous_a pamphlet_n which_o do_v pass_v up_o and_o down_o without_o control_n in_o this_o licentious_a age_n in_o which_o man_n adventure_v upon_o the_o very_a language_n of_o hell_n under_o pretence_n of_o exercise_v their_o christian_a liberty_n and_o speak_v according_a to_o their_o new_a light_n and_o this_o point_n will_v be_v too_o clear_a for_o we_o do_v already_o grant_v that_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v trouble_v for_o follow_v the_o dictate_v of_o his_o conscience_n right_o inform_v but_o for_o follow_v of_o pernicious_a error_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o his_o own_o conscience_n unless_o he_o be_v judicial_o blind_v by_o god_n for_o his_o customary_a sin_v against_o light_n of_o conscience_n in_o former_a time_n 2._o nothing_o be_v more_o common_a then_o for_o man_n to_o speak_v out_o of_o the_o abundance_n of_o that_o natural_a atheism_n which_o lurk_v in_o their_o heart_n contrary_a to_o the_o dictate_v of_o their_o natural_a conscience_n 3._o though_o conscience_n may_v be_v quiet_a whilst_o man_n be_v exercise_v their_o wit_n to_o maintain_v some_o error_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o those_o mystery_n of_o faith_n which_o transcend_v natural_a reason_n and_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o corruption_n of_o reason_n especial_o if_o they_o be_v engage_v in_o multitude_n of_o business_n connive_v at_o by_o such_o as_o sit_v at_o stern_a and_o do_v thrive_v and_o prosper_v in_o the_o world_n hear_v yet_o conscience_n will_v find_v a_o time_n to_o speak_v when_o it_o may_v
civil_a state_n prince_n and_o people_n for_o this_o spiritual_a pollution_n the_o turk_n be_v let_v loose_a from_o the_o river_n euphrates_n to_o punish_v the_o worshipper_n of_o imamage_n rev._n 9_o 14._o 20._o the_o flourish_a of_o religion_n be_v the_o flourish_a of_o the_o civil_a state_n and_o the_o decay_n of_o religion_n the_o decay_n and_o ruin_n of_o the_o civil_a state_n according_a to_o the_o ordinary_a dispensation_n of_o god_n when_o christ_n have_v ride_v through_o the_o roman_a state_n on_o the_o white_a horse_n of_o his_o gospel_n of_o grace_n and_o be_v reject_v then_o follow_v the_o red_a horse_n of_o war_n the_o black_a horse_n of_o famine_n and_o the_o pale_a horse_n of_o pestilence_n and_o other_o deadly_a plague_n rev._n 6._o from_o the_o 2._o to_o the_o 8_o vers_n can_v any_o christian_a state_n hope_v upon_o scripture_n ground_n that_o it_o shall_v enjoy_v honour_n health_n riches_n peace_n safety_n settlement_n if_o faith_n and_o piety_n be_v overthrow_v by_o the_o indulgence_n of_o that_o state_n if_o seducer_n be_v permit_v to_o poison_v soul_n to_o teach_v damnable_a doctrine_n and_o persuade_v man_n to_o deny_v the_o lord_n that_o buy_v they_o to_o deny_v his_o divine_a nature_n and_o subsistence_n his_o office_n and_o the_o efficacy_n of_o they_o nay_o his_o very_a redemption_n by_o way_n of_o purchase_n by_o way_n of_o proper_a and_o alsufficient_a satisfaction_n as_o the_o socimans_n do_v the_o patience_n and_o bounty_n of_o god_n act_v as_o it_o be_v by_o prerogative_n be_v glorious_o manifest_v in_o our_o day_n but_o sure_o no_o christian_a state_n can_v be_v secure_v by_o a_o council_n or_o a_o army_n which_o permit_v man_n to_o live_v without_o christ_n without_o god_n in_o the_o world_n without_o any_o spiritual_a communion_n with_o god_n in_o his_o coeternal_a son_n by_o his_o coessential_a spirit_n woe_n be_v to_o we_o if_o we_o neglect_v so_o great_a salvation_n as_o be_v yet_o offer_v to_o we_o in_o this_o day_n of_o grace_n xv._n the_o church_n as_o a_o church_n have_v no_o sword_n it_o do_v therefore_o belong_v to_o the_o magistrate_n to_o smite_v with_o the_o sword_n but_o the_o church_n may_v exhort_v the_o magistrate_n to_o do_v his_o duty_n 1_o king_n 18._o 40._o xvi_o we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o christian_a forbearance_n vouchsafe_v to_o weak_a brethren_n that_o they_o may_v live_v quiet_o in_o all_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n and_o antichristian_a indulgence_n extend_v to_o blasphemous_a heretic_n and_o seduce_a apostate_n that_o they_o may_v live_v quiet_o in_o all_o ungodliness_n and_o dishonesty_n to_o the_o infection_n and_o seduction_n of_o other_o the_o king_n shall_v be_v reward_v for_o burn_v and_o god_n praise_v for_o judge_v the_o seduce_a whore_n but_o judicious_a mr._n cotton_n be_v afraid_a that_o the_o antichristian_a whore_n will_v steal_v in_o at_o the_o backdoor_n of_o a_o toleration_n xvii_o gospel-dispensation_n be_v as_o spiritual_a for_o the_o conversion_n of_o sorcerer_n adulterer_n murderer_n as_o for_o recovery_n of_o blasphemous_a heretic_n and_o seduce_a apostate_n and_o therefore_o they_o who_o plead_v for_o the_o toleration_n of_o these_o obstinate_a person_n in_o hope_n of_o their_o conversion_n do_v indeed_o proclaim_v a_o general_a pardon_n for_o all_o malefactor_n save_o such_o only_a as_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n xviii_o they_o who_o permit_v man_n to_o deny_v supernatural_a principle_n do_v permit_v they_o to_o overthrow_v the_o gospel_n which_o be_v not_o write_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o nature_n as_o the_o law_n be_v and_o yet_o it_o shall_v be_v consider_v that_o they_o who_o deny_v the_o gospel_n do_v consequent_o sin_v against_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n because_o they_o make_v god_n a_o liar_n by_o reject_v the_o testimony_n of_o gâd_n concern_v his_o son_n 1._o joh._n 5._o 10._o they_o who_o do_v seduce_v man_n from_o the_o belief_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n as_o reveal_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v to_o die_v the_o death_n and_o yet_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v as_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a a_o revelation_n as_o the_o new_a testament_n itself_o and_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o god_n do_v reveal_v himself_o in_o christ_n even_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n for_o there_o be_v much_o gospel_n in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n anti-scripturists_a because_o all_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n bare_a witness_n of_o christ_n and_o moses_n say_v our_o saviour_n write_v of_o i_o if_o then_o there_o be_v a_o indulgence_n grant_v to_o such_o as_o deny_v supernatural_a truth_n man_n may_v overthrow_v both_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o be_v antiscripturist_n without_o control_n nay_o it_o will_v if_o this_o absurdity_n be_v grant_v clear_o follow_v that_o the_o magistrate_n may_v punish_v such_o severe_o who_o deny_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v write_v in_o aristotle_n but_o must_v not_o touch_v they_o who_o deny_v all_o the_o supernatural_a mystery_n of_o faith_n write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o god_n blush_v you_o heaven_n and_o be_v ashamed_a o_o earth_n at_o the_o atheistical_a libertinism_n of_o this_o licentious_a age_n seducer_n who_o do_v thrust_v man_n out_o of_o the_o way_n which_o the_o lord_n command_v they_o by_o his_o write_a word_n to_o walk_v in_o 35._o be_v put_v to_o death_n deut._n 13._o 5_o 10._o though_o they_o be_v direct_v by_o a_o supernatural_a revelation_n to_o walk_v in_o that_o way_n reverend_a mr._n burrough_n do_v often_o acknowledge_v in_o his_o irenicum_fw-la that_o such_o as_o profess_v christianity_n be_v just_o punish_v for_o sin_v against_o the_o common_a light_n of_o christianity_n for_o it_o be_v not_o conscience_n but_o the_o devil_n in_o the_o conscience_n which_o move_v christian_n to_o maintain_v error_n against_o the_o light_n of_o christianity_n error_n that_o be_v destructive_a to_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o if_o any_o man_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o be_v a_o advocate_n for_o the_o devil_n i_o dare_v not_o be_v a_o advocate_n for_o he_o only_o i_o desire_v he_o to_o beware_v how_o he_o hearken_v to_o the_o devil_n in_o samuel_n mantle_n and_o beseech_v he_o to_o cry_v mighty_o to_o he_o who_o alone_o can_v cast_v out_o devil_n to_o cast_v the_o devil_n out_o of_o his_o conscience_n 175._o &_o place_v himself_o there_o as_o on_o a_o throne_n that_o he_o may_v rule_v the_o conscience_n and_o command_v the_o whole_a man_n by_o his_o word_n &_o spirit_n xix_o he_o that_o by_o seduce_v seek_v to_o thrust_v man_n away_o from_o the_o belief_n and_o worship_n of_o the_o only_a true_a god_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v deserve_v to_o be_v punish_v for_o his_o very_a attempt_n and_o endeavour_v to_o subvert_v soul_n though_o he_o do_v not_o prevail_v with_o one_o soul_n to_o depart_v from_o god_n because_o he_o have_v seek_v to_o thrust_v thou_o away_o from_o jehovah_n thy_o god_n deut._n 13._o 10._o the_o very_a murderous_a attempt_n of_o kill_v a_o soul_n by_o abuse_v a_o ordinance_n of_o god_n corrupt_v of_o religion_n tell_v lie_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n father_v our_o own_o damnable_a lie_n upon_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v a_o capital_a crime_n xx._n christian_n be_v in_o a_o worse_a condition_n than_o the_o jew_n be_v if_o man_n may_v seduce_v our_o wife_n and_o child_n into_o such_o opinion_n and_o practice_n as_o will_v certain_o undo_v their_o soul_n to_o all_o eternity_n and_o we_o must_v only_o entreat_v they_o not_o to_o seduce_v our_o friend_n to_o hell_n and_o the_o christian_a magistrate_n have_v no_o power_n to_o punish_v these_o soul_n murder_v seducer_n this_o argument_n be_v affectionate_o press_v by_o sweet_a mr._n burrough_n in_o his_o book_n of_o heart_n division_n pag._n 23._o 24._o i_o have_v much_o more_o to_o deliver_v upon_o this_o weighty_a point_n but_o i_o remember_v what_o hugo_n say_v that_o it_o be_v best_o at_o some_o time_n to_o say_v nothing_o at_o every_o time_n to_o say_v enough_o but_o at_o no_o time_n to_o say_v all_o 6_o ma_fw-la 50_o finis_fw-la tertul._n apolog_fw-la cap._n 46._o lactant._n epiphan_n cicero_n l._n 3._o de_fw-la finibus_fw-la de_fw-fr authoritate_fw-la verborum_fw-la 1_o jo._n 5._o 7._o rob._n stephanus_n senior_n &_o junior_a m_o optimae_fw-la sidei_fw-la hieron_n prob._n in_o epist._n cathol_a hieron_n epist._n ad_fw-la marcel_n ult_n bedae_fw-la translatio_fw-la laborat_fw-la cyprian_a de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la tertul._n prescript_n antichrist_n racoviens_fw-la vide_fw-la cat._n racoviens_fw-la scripta_fw-la socini_fw-la moscorovii_fw-la crelâii_fw-la volklii_fw-la smalcii_n goslavii_fw-la alcuinun_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la in_o praefatione_fw-la ad_fw-la carolum_fw-la magnum_fw-la schlusselbergium_fw-la de_fw-la haeresibus_fw-la stegmannum_fw-la junium_fw-la zanchium_n gomarum_fw-la voetium_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la trinitate_fw-la act._n council_n nicen._n nicer_n the_o saur_n orth._n fid_fw-we l._n 4._o &_o haeres_fw-la 32._o epiph._n haeres_fw-la 65._o aug._n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n
vide_fw-la clem._n alex_n stromat_fw-la lib._n 7._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d vide_fw-la basil_n ascet._n reg._n 80._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d nihil_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-la fide_fw-la nisi_fw-la quod_fw-la deus_fw-la per_fw-la apostolos_n &_o prophetas_fw-la revelavit_fw-la aut_fw-la quod_fw-la inde_fw-la evidenter_fw-la deducitur_fw-la bellarm._n l_o 4._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c._n 9_o 9_o vide_fw-la salmer_n in_o 2_o epist._n ad_fw-la timoth._n disput._n 4._o 4._o phot._n biblioth_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d vide_fw-la cyrill_n de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la &_o per_n christi_fw-la c._n 10._o theodoret._n epit._n divin_fw-fr dogm_n c._n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la damasc_n orth_n fid_fw-we l._n 3._o naz._n orat_fw-la 23._o in_o laudem_fw-la heronis_fw-la athan._n the_o decret_a synod_n nicen_n eundem_fw-la epist_n ad_fw-la serapion_n &_o de_fw-fr sentent_fw-fr greg._n nyssen_n dyon_n contra_fw-la eunom_fw-la tertul._n adversus_fw-la praxaean_n theodoret._n dialog_n 2._o cap._n 4._o nazianzen_n orat_fw-la 37._o de_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la epiphan_n contra_fw-la sabel_n basilium_fw-la contra_fw-la eunomium_fw-la sabellium_fw-la arium_fw-la cyprian_a lib._n 2._o adversus_fw-la judaeos_fw-la ad_fw-la quinirum_fw-la cap._n 6._o august_n contra_fw-la maximin_n bellarm._n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 11._o 11._o quod_fw-la express_v non_fw-la habetur_fw-la in_o scripture_n potest_fw-la tamen_fw-la inde_fw-la evidenter_fw-la deduci_fw-la vocabulum_fw-la in_o scripture_n non_fw-la legimus_fw-la rem_fw-la cui_fw-la hoc_fw-la vocabulum_fw-la recte_fw-la adhibitum_fw-la est_fw-la fideique_fw-la sensum_fw-la invenimus_fw-la vide_fw-la augustinum_n epist._n 174._o ubi_fw-la contra_fw-la pascentium_n arianum_n dispurat_n eundem_fw-la insuper_fw-la in_o joannem_fw-la tract_n 97._o ambrosium_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la contra_fw-la aria_n nos_fw-la cap._n 5._o augustinum_n contra_fw-la maximinum_n arian_n theod._n hist._n lib._n 1._o c._n 8._o basil._n contra_fw-la eunom_fw-la c._n 4._o tractat._n definit_a tom._n 2._o athanas._n athanas._n greg._n nyssen_n contra_fw-la eunom_fw-la lib._n 1._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d etc._n etc._n etc._n job_n 12._o 16._o pro._n 8._o 14._o isa._n 28._o 29._o gal._n 4._o 8._o phil._n 2._o 6._o col._n 2._o 9_o the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o godhead_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o three_o divine_a subsistence_n 1._o the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o father_n 2._o the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o son_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d vide_fw-la d._n davenant_n in_o coloss._n 2._o 9_o jesus_n christ_n be_v true_o god_n the_o divine_a title_n of_o jesus_n christ_n prove_v his_o person_n to_o be_v divine_a and_o one_o of_o the_o nature_n unite_v in_o his_o person_n to_o be_v divine_a divine_a isa._n 9_o 6._o en_fw-fr infantem_fw-la aeternitatis_fw-la patrem_fw-la en_fw-fr parvulum_fw-la optimum_fw-la maximum_fw-la deum_fw-la maximum_fw-la maximum_fw-la christ_n be_v jehovah_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v god_n ehié_fw-fr jehouâ_fw-la &_o quod_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la contractum_fw-la est_fw-la iâh_n ab_fw-la hajâ_fw-la vel_fw-la hauâ_fw-la esse_fw-la derivantur_fw-la essentiam_fw-la infinitam_fw-la notant_fw-la nomen_fw-la itaque_fw-la jehovae_fw-la cui_fw-la reliqua_fw-la duo_fw-la sunt_fw-la aequalia_fw-la deo_fw-la proprium_fw-la est_fw-la gomarus_n op_n par_fw-fr 3._o disp_n 2._o de_fw-la deo_fw-la vero_fw-la jesus_n christ_n be_v immanuel_n immanuel_n epiphan_n contra_fw-la apostolicos_fw-la vide_fw-la cyril_n lum_n in_o joh._n cap._n 3._o &_o 8._o hiuro_fw-la in_o zach._n 2._o ambr._n l._n 5._o de_fw-la fide_fw-la cap._n 4._o aug._n contra_fw-la pascen_n tium_fw-la nemo_fw-la igitur_fw-la jam_fw-la calumniaturde_a verbo_fw-la et_fw-la si_fw-la enim_fw-la verbum_fw-la ipsum_fw-la in_o lege_fw-la scriptum_fw-la non_fw-la reperitur_fw-la res_fw-la tamen_fw-la reperitur_fw-la ego_fw-la et_fw-la pater_fw-la unum_fw-la sumus_fw-la epist._n 174._o 174._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d john_n 16._o 15._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d john_n 17._o 10._o vide_fw-la d._n glassium_n in_o explic_a orat_fw-la christi_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d etc._n etc._n epiph._n contra_fw-la sabellium_fw-la divine_a attribute_n be_v ascribe_v to_o christ._n 1_o eternity_n micah_n 5._o 2._o from_o the_o day_n of_o eternity_n john_n 17._o 5._o 2_o omnipotence_n 3_o immutability_n 4_o omniscience_n 5_o immensity_n prov._n 8._o 22._o joh._n 1._o 1._o 3._o matth._n 18_o 20._o matth._n 28._o 20._o 3_o divine_a work_n john_n 2._o 19_o 21._o horsum_fw-la profuit_fw-la personae_fw-la dignitas_fw-la ut_fw-la irae_fw-la infinitae_fw-la onus_fw-la sustineret_fw-la &_o sufficiens_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d esset_fw-la isa._n 53._o 4._o act._n 20_o 28._o heb._n 9_o 12._o 14._o 26._o divine_a honour_n due_a to_o christ._n rom._n 10._o 14._o 1_o cor._n 1_o 2._o joh._n 14._o 1._o psal._n 2._o 12._o ro._n 10._o 11._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 1_o cor._n 12._o v._n 4._o 11._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d rom._n 8._o 6._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d joh._n 16._o 13_o 1._o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2._o divine_a title_n title_n christus_fw-la est_fw-la potentia_fw-la dei_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d spiritus_fw-la sanctus_n est_fw-la potentia_fw-la dei_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d vide_fw-la gomarum_fw-la disp._n de_fw-la trinit_fw-la tom._n 3._o disp._n 7._o &_o 8._o divine_a title_n which_o prove_v the_o nature_n &_o person_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o be_v divine_a num._n 12._o 6_o heb._n 1._o 1._o 2_o pet._n 1._o 21._o 1_o cor._n 3._o 16._o 17._o 1_o cor._n 6._o 19_o compare_v together_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 5_o 6._o 3._o divine_a attribute_n the_o omnipotence_n of_o the_o spirit_n 4._o divine_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n the_o omniscience_n of_o the_o spirit_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d rom._n 9_o 1._o 1_o cor._n 2._o 10_o 11._o joh._n 16._o 13._o the_o omnipresence_n of_o the_o spirit_n rom._n 8_o 9_o 2_o tim._n 1._o 14._o 1_o cor._n 3._o 16_o rom._n 8._o 26_o 27._o 1_o cor._n 12._o ââ_o 1_o thes_n 2._o 13_o vide_fw-la basilium_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la vide_fw-la nazianzen_n orat._n 37_o &_o testimoniorum_fw-la examen_fw-la de_fw-la deitaâe_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la inventes_fw-la petrum_fw-la damianus_n lib._n 3._o epi_n 1_o 1_o cor._n 6._o 19_o 20._o rom._n 12._o 1._o 2._o 1_o peâ_n 2._o 5._o 1_o cor._n 3._o 16_o 17._o eph._n 2._o 18._o 22._o vide_fw-la aug._n cont_n maximinum_n act_n 7_o 51._o isai_n 63._o 10._o ephe._n 4_o 30_o heb_n 3_o 7_o 8_o galath_n 5._o 18._o 25._o rome_n 8._o 12_o 13._o 14._o 1_o thess._n 5._o 19_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 13._o matth._n 3._o 11._o john_n 3_o 5._o the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n godhead_n deus_fw-la unus_fw-la tâ_n inuâus_a solus_fw-la unicus_fw-la simplicissime_fw-la unús_fw-la unicissime_fw-la unicus_fw-la the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a spirit_n all_o three_o be_v but_o one_o only_a god_n 1_o john_n 5._o 7_o john_n 10._o 30_o unitatem_fw-la essentiae_fw-la contra_fw-la arianos_fw-la trinitatem_fw-la personarum_fw-la contra_fw-la sabellianos_fw-la tuemur_fw-la tres_fw-fr substantias_fw-la esse_fw-la dixerunt_fw-la subsistentium_fw-la personas_fw-la per_fw-la substantias_fw-la edocentes_fw-la non_fw-la substantiam_fw-la patris_fw-la et_fw-la filijeâ_n spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la diversitate_fw-la dissimilis_fw-la essentiae_fw-la separantes_fw-la ex_fw-la cânâil_fw-la antiâchen_n hilar._n de_fw-fr synodo_fw-la adversus_fw-la arianos_fw-la arianos_fw-la we_o do_v not_o only_o acknowledge_v a_o trinity_n but_o a_o trinunity_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o error_n of_o the_o tritheite_n vnum_fw-la &_o trinum_fw-la de_fw-la monstrant_fw-la trinunum_fw-la deum_fw-la simplicissimè_fw-la unicum_fw-la 1_o iâh_n 5._o 7._o he_o tres_fw-la sunt_fw-la unus_fw-la ille_fw-la deus_fw-la trinunus_fw-la deus_fw-la infinitum_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la sum_n &_o absolutè_fw-la perfectum_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la esse_fw-la nisi_fw-la unum_fw-la si_fw-mi ânus_fw-la potest_fw-la emnia_fw-la quid_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la pluribus_fw-la diis_fw-la omne_fw-la autem_fw-la potest_fw-la deus_fw-la trinunus_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la trinunus_fw-la est_fw-la unus_fw-la absolute_a trinus_fw-la relate_fw-la unus_fw-la quoad_fw-la essentiam_fw-la trinus_fw-la quoad_fw-la subsistentiam_fw-la subsistentiam_fw-la see_v mr._n fry_v his_o answer_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o blasphemy_n and_o error_n etc._n etc._n p._n 20_o 22._o 22._o deus_fw-la ita_fw-la est_fw-la unus_fw-la ut_fw-la etiam_fw-la âit_n solus_fw-la &_o ita_fw-la solus_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la esse_fw-la alius_fw-la en_fw-fr naturam_fw-la infinitam_fw-la summen_fw-mi unam_fw-la &_o unicissimè_fw-la unicam_fw-la unicam_fw-la deus_fw-la non_fw-la tam_fw-la unus_fw-la numero_fw-la dicendus_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la unicus_fw-la pater_fw-la &_o filius_fw-la sunt_fw-la unum_fw-la potius_fw-la quam_fw-la unus_fw-la joh._n 10._o 30._o sunt_fw-la inquies_fw-la unus_fw-la deus_fw-la imò_fw-la potius_fw-la sunt_fw-la idem_fw-la unicusque_fw-la deus_fw-la deus_fw-la personae_fw-la coessentiiale_n &_o in_o se_fw-la mâtuò_fw-la subsistentes_fw-la inconfusè_fw-la uniuntur_fw-la &_o indivisè_fw-la discernuntur_fw-la discernuntur_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d natura_fw-la divina_fw-la est_fw-la singularissima_fw-la &_o simplicissimè_fw-la uniâa_fw-la uniâa_fw-la non_fw-la minus_fw-la individuum_fw-la est_fw-la essentia_fw-la divina_fw-la quam_fw-la persona_fw-la d._n alâing_n problem_n problem_n natura_fw-la divina_fw-la est_fw-la
perfectibilis_fw-la persona_fw-la enim_fw-la creata_fw-la actuat_fw-la et_fw-la perficit_fw-la essentiam_fw-la perfectibilem_fw-la personalitates_fw-la autem_fw-la increatae_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la actus_fw-la naturae_fw-la divinae_fw-la ut_fw-la sic_fw-la &_o praecise_a consideratae_fw-la eam_fw-la perficientes_fw-la vel_fw-la informantes_fw-la informantes_fw-la essentia_fw-la in_o creatis_fw-la est_fw-la imperfectae_fw-la actualitatis_fw-la &_o proinde_fw-la perfectibilis_fw-la essentia_fw-la autem_fw-la divina_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la se_fw-la ad_fw-la modum_fw-la potentiae_fw-la perfectibilis_fw-la nec_fw-la persona_fw-la divina_fw-la ad_fw-la modum_fw-la actus_fw-la naturam_fw-la divinam_fw-la infinitam_fw-la simplicissimam_fw-la perficientis_fw-la ratio_fw-la quidditativa_fw-la &_o ratio_fw-la relativa_fw-la in_o deo_fw-la tanquam_fw-la diversae_fw-la rationes_fw-la formales_fw-la à _fw-la nobis_fw-la concipiuntur_fw-la sed_fw-la ambae_fw-la illae_fw-la rationes_fw-la formales_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o deo_fw-la secundum_fw-la ultimâm_fw-la unitatem_fw-la &_o actualitatem_fw-la propriam_fw-la nihil_fw-la enim_fw-la perficit_fw-la essentiam_fw-la divinam_fw-la in_o actu_fw-la quidditativo_fw-la praeter_fw-la ipsissimam_fw-la essentiam_fw-la nihil_fw-la perficit_fw-la personam_fw-la in_o esse_fw-la personali_fw-la praeter_fw-la propriam_fw-la subsistentiam_fw-la nihil_fw-la perficit_fw-la personam_fw-la in_o esse_fw-la relativo_fw-la praeter_fw-la propriam_fw-la relationem_fw-la pater_fw-la per_fw-la ipsam_fw-la paternitatem_fw-la perficitur_fw-la in_o esse_fw-la relativo_fw-la relativo_fw-la in_o deo_fw-la est_fw-la essentia_fw-la &_o tres_fw-la relationes_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la tres_fw-la essentiae_fw-la relativae_fw-la propriâta_fw-la tes_fw-fr personales_fw-la praecisè_fw-la &_o formaliter_fw-la sumptae_fw-la non_fw-la uniuntur_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la &_o in_o se_fw-la nam_fw-la unio_fw-la in_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la essentiâ_fw-la est_fw-la in_o aliquo_fw-la tertio_fw-la tertio_fw-la vide_fw-la junium_fw-la contra_fw-la bellarminum_fw-la controu._n 2._o lib._n 1._o praefat._n ut_fw-la res_fw-la planior_fw-la sit_fw-la id_fw-la praemittendum_fw-la est_fw-la personae_fw-la considerandae_fw-la triplicem_fw-la rationem_fw-la esse_fw-la communem_fw-la in_o essentiâ_fw-la quà _fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la singularem_fw-la absolutam_fw-la in_o persona_fw-la quà _fw-la subsistit_fw-la in_o unitate_fw-la essentiae_fw-la &_o relativam_fw-la in_o distinctione_n &_o ordine_fw-la personae_fw-la unius_fw-la ad_fw-la alteram_fw-la alteram_fw-la ratione_fw-la communis_fw-la deitatis_fw-la &_o communium_fw-la essentialiumque_fw-la attributorum_fw-la nulla_fw-la distinctio_fw-la cogitari_fw-la debet_fw-la sed_fw-la tantùm_fw-la ratione_fw-la personae_fw-la &_o proprietatum_fw-la personalium_fw-la personalium_fw-la essentia_fw-la notat_fw-la naturam_fw-la divinam_fw-la cum_fw-la proprietatibus_fw-la communibus_fw-la persona_fw-la notat_fw-la naturam_fw-la divinam_fw-la cum_fw-la proprietati_fw-la bus_fw-la do_v inctivis_fw-la sive_fw-la istae_fw-la proprietates_fw-la sint_fw-la absolutae_fw-la sive_fw-la sint_fw-la relativae_fw-la habere_fw-la subsistentiam_fw-la à _fw-la see_v quid_fw-la absolutum_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d est_fw-la quid_fw-la positivum_fw-la nomen_fw-la autem_fw-la personae_fw-la nomen_fw-la relativum_fw-la communiter_fw-la dicitur_fw-la originationis_fw-la aut_fw-la originis_fw-la respectum_fw-la includens_fw-la quo_fw-la persâna_fw-la divina_fw-la à _fw-la se_fw-la vel_fw-la ab_fw-la aliâ_fw-la subsistentiam_fw-la habere_fw-la significatur_fw-la habere_fw-la autem_fw-la subsistentiam_fw-la à _fw-la se_fw-la quantum_fw-la mâhi_fw-la videtur_fw-la non_fw-la dicit_fw-la respectum_fw-la ad_fw-la aliud_fw-la vel_fw-la alium_fw-la alium_fw-la tres_fw-fr sunt_fw-la in_o eadem_fw-la naturâ_fw-la divinâ_fw-la indivisâ_fw-la coexistentiâ_fw-la coessentialiter_fw-la subsistentes_fw-la tres_fw-la enim_fw-la personae_fw-la inconfusè_fw-la uniuntur_fw-la &_o indivisè_fw-la discernuntur_fw-la discernuntur_fw-la est_fw-la aliquid_fw-la in_o persona_fw-la ab_fw-la solutum_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la proprium_fw-la est_fw-la aliquid_fw-la in_o deo_fw-la relativum_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la commune_fw-la identitas_fw-la similitudo_fw-la aequalitas_fw-la mutua_fw-la praesentia_fw-la personarum_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la propter_fw-la inconfusam_fw-la in_o se_fw-la mutuò_fw-la comprehensionem_fw-la sunt_fw-la relationes_fw-la ad_fw-la intra_fw-la omnibus_fw-la personis_fw-la commune_v relationes_fw-la auten_fw-mi distinctivae_fw-la sunt_fw-la propriae_fw-la propriae_fw-la omnis_fw-la distinctio_fw-la essentialis_fw-la est_fw-la realis_fw-la sed_fw-la omnis_fw-la distinctio_fw-la realis_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la essentialis_fw-la d._n voetius_fw-la voetius_fw-la personae_fw-la divinae_fw-la non_fw-la differunt_fw-la realiter_fw-la essentialiter_fw-la nec_fw-la realiter_fw-la separabiliter_fw-la sed_fw-la proprietatibus_fw-la realibus_fw-la personalibus_fw-la tale_n autem_fw-la sunt_fw-la istae_fw-la reale_v proprietates_fw-la quae_fw-la essentiae_fw-la divinae_fw-la non_fw-la superaddunt_fw-la novam_fw-la entitatem_fw-la vide_fw-la d._n alt_v problem_n x._o the_o difference_n between_o create_a and_o uncreated_a person_n 7._o observation_n concern_v create_v person_n 1._o the_o infinite_a nature_n of_o uncreated_a person_n the_o difference_n between_o create_a and_o uncreated_a person_n be_v infinite_a infinite_a vide_fw-la nazian_n orat_fw-la de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la damasc_n orthod_n sid_n lib._n 3._o c._n 5._o athanas._o dialog_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la &_o in_o mat._n 11._o nazian_n orat_fw-la de_fw-la pace_fw-la orat._n 37_o &_o 51._o 51._o absurdum_fw-la est_fw-la personas_fw-la coessentiale_n &_o infinitas_fw-la ad_fw-la creatarum_fw-la quae_fw-la finitae_fw-la &_o diversae_fw-la essentiae_fw-la sunt_fw-la modulum_fw-la redigere_fw-la redigere_fw-la natura_fw-la creata_fw-la est_fw-la dependens_fw-la persona_fw-la creata_fw-la est_fw-la independens_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la in_o alio_fw-la per_fw-la dependentiam_fw-la ab_fw-la illo_fw-la tanquam_fw-la sustentante_fw-la cum_fw-la humanitas_fw-la christi_fw-la consecuta_fw-la fuerit_fw-la personalitatem_fw-la propriâ_fw-la infinite_a perfectiorem_fw-la none_a cur_n propriam_fw-la personalâtatem_fw-la amplius_fw-la appeteret_fw-la si_fw-mi enim_fw-la adhuc_fw-la inclinaretur_fw-la ad_fw-la propriam_fw-la persoâalitatem_fw-la vi_fw-la quadam_fw-la detineretur_fw-la in_o verbo_fw-la &_o ita_fw-la status_fw-la illius_fw-la esset_fw-la violentus_fw-la &_o quasi_fw-la contra_fw-la naturam_fw-la cajetanus_n the_o three_o difference_n difference_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d damascen_n orth_n fid_fw-we lib._n 1._o c._n 4._o 4._o vide_fw-la irenâum_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 16._o athanas._o in_o decret_a synod_n nicen_n naziââ_n lib._n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la cyrill_n lib._n 10._o contra_fw-la julian._n euseb._n praeparat_fw-la evangel_n lib._n 8._o c._n 2._o athenagoram_fw-la talianum_fw-la augustin_n de_fw-fr trinit_fw-la &_o passim_fw-la passim_fw-la vorstius_fw-la deum_fw-la contemnendum_fw-la pingit_fw-la corporeum_fw-la visibilem_fw-la mutabilem_fw-la accidentibus_fw-la subjectum_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la sunt_fw-la plures_fw-la res_fw-la etc._n etc._n vide_fw-la eglisem_fw-la cris._n &_o hypocris_n bogerman_n contra_fw-la grotium_fw-la synod_n nat._n dodrac_n dodrac_n racou._n catechis_n de_fw-fr cognition_n dei_fw-la cap._n 1._o 1._o remonstrant_fw-la conâess_n apolog._n p._n 41._o 42._o 42._o deus_fw-la est_fw-la spiritus_fw-la joh._n 4._o 24._o jehovah_n exod._n 33._o 19_o eheje_fw-fr exod._n 3._o 14_o 15_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d apocal._n 1._o 4._o sum_z perfectus_fw-la genes_n 17._o 1._o summeque_fw-la unus_fw-la deut._n 6._o 4._o &_o proinde_fw-la omnem_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la compositionem_fw-la imò_fw-la &_o quasi_fw-la compositionem_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la negamus_fw-la vide_fw-la rhadan_n episcop_n pact_n controver_n inâter_fw-la thomam_fw-la &_o scotum_n part_n 1._o controu._n 4._o append_v 2._o pag._n 82._o 83_o 84._o 84._o eglisem_fw-la contra_fw-la vorstium_fw-la vorstium_fw-la maccov_n mis._n quaest_n disp._n 17._o 20_o 23_o 24_o 25._o 26._o vasquez_n disp_n 16._o deus_fw-la est_fw-la libre_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la compositione_n etâam_fw-la improprie_fw-la dictâ_fw-la qualis_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la essentiâ_fw-la &_o esse_fw-la ex_fw-la natura_fw-la &_o supposito_fw-la seu_fw-la ex_fw-la essentia_fw-la &_o subsistentiâ_fw-la ex_fw-la genere_fw-la &_o differentia_fw-la &_o proinde_fw-la libre_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la distinctione_n in_fw-la essentia_fw-la suâ_n nam_fw-la distinctionis_fw-la &_o multitudinis_fw-la transcendentalis_fw-la personarum_fw-la atque_fw-la adeo_fw-la modorum_fw-la &_o relationum_fw-la long_o alia_fw-la est_fw-la ratio_fw-la d._n voet._n voet._n mareria_fw-la prima_fw-la formae_fw-la differentiae_fw-la ultimae_fw-la etc._n etc._n simpliciter_fw-la simplices_fw-la dicuntur_fw-la angeli_fw-la sunt_fw-la comparative_a simplices_fw-la essentia_fw-la autem_fw-la divina_fw-la est_fw-la absolutè_fw-la &_o ãâã_d simplex_fw-la enââ_n summum_fw-la est_fw-la ãâ¦ã_z &_o proinde_fw-la essentitiâ_n unitate_fw-la unum_fw-la simplicissimè_fw-la unicum_fw-la vide._n d._n voâtium_fw-la de_fw-la natura_fw-la dei_fw-la saâpl_n saâpl_n non_fw-la deâemus_fw-la proprietates_fw-la dei_fw-la ab_fw-la essentia_fw-la ejus_fw-la vel_fw-la cogitation_n scparaâe_n quia_fw-la in_o essentiae_fw-la forma_fw-la &_o virâute_fw-la omnes_fw-la continentur_fw-la &_o deus_fw-la sine_fw-la proprietatibus_fw-la ejus_fw-la cogitaâi_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la d._n wallaeus_n de_fw-fr deo_fw-la pag._n 127._o 127._o essentia_fw-la divina_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la iâ_n potenâiâ_fw-la quia_fw-la est_fw-la paras_fw-la actus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la perfectibilis_fw-la quia_fw-la omnes_fw-la perfectiones_fw-la complectitur_fw-la complectitur_fw-la deus_fw-la non_fw-la depender_n à _fw-la subjecto_fw-la à _fw-la âa_n âsis_fw-la vel_fw-la internis_fw-la vel_fw-la externis_fw-la à _fw-la principio_fw-la quocunque_fw-la priori_fw-la aut_fw-la superieri_fw-la superieri_fw-la essentia_fw-la divina_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la in_o se_fw-la composita_fw-la nec_fw-la aliquid_fw-la ipsi_fw-la componibile_fw-la nec_fw-la ipsa_fw-la alicui_fw-la componibili_fw-la essentia_fw-la aeterna_fw-la nec_fw-la sâipsâ_fw-la nec_fw-la ullâ_fw-la realiâ_fw-la posterior_n esse_fw-la potest_fw-la potest_fw-la proprietates_fw-la deâ_n non_fw-la minùs_fw-la ãâã_d sunt_fw-la quam_fw-la ejus_fw-la essential_a ãâ¦ã_z non_fw-it essent_fw-la ipsissima_fw-la dei_fw-la essentia_fw-la simâl_fw-la ãâ¦ã_z joh_n 5._o 26._o est_fw-la
of_o the_o lord_n day_n eheu_fw-la nec_fw-la fictis_fw-la lachrymis_fw-la dolendaest_n ista_fw-la profanatio_fw-la quae_fw-la sub_fw-la praetextu_fw-la libertatis_fw-la christianae_n in_fw-la diei_fw-la dominici_n celebrationem_fw-la tanquam_fw-la torrens_fw-la irrupit_fw-la sabbathun_n inter_fw-la omnes_fw-la mortales_fw-la celebre_fw-la vide_fw-la theophil_n antioch_n lib._n ad_fw-la attolycum_fw-la joseph_n lib._n 2._o adversus_fw-la appion_n phil._n jud._n lib._n 2_o de_fw-la vitâ_fw-la moysis_n the_o jewish_a holy_a day_n day_n vide_fw-la aug._n ep._n 68_o ad_fw-la casulanum_fw-la chrysost._n homil._n 10._o in_o cap._n 2._o gen._n phil._n judae_fw-la lib._n 3._o de_fw-la vitâ_fw-la moysis_n theod._n trad_n quaest_n in_o gen._n see_v master_n white_a of_o the_o morality_n of_o the_o four_o commanment_n dr._n twisse_n mr._n cawdry_n and_o mr._n palmer_n mr._n shepheard_n dr._n ames_n medulla_n theol._n dr._n lake_n thesis_n the_o ground_n of_o sanctify_v the_o lord_n day_n the_o jewish_a sabbath_n isa._n 58._o 13._o the_o christian_a sabbath_n the_o evangâlicall_n ministry_n the_o scope_n of_o the_o second_o and_o four_o commandment_n rabbi_n agnon_n dicit_fw-la hanc_fw-la benedictionem_fw-la transire_fw-la super_fw-la sanctificantes_fw-la sabbatum_fw-la ante_fw-la legem_fw-la in_o sina_n datam_fw-la cognitio_fw-la &_o celebratio_fw-la dei_fw-la creatoris_fw-la &_o consideratio_fw-la seria_fw-la operum_fw-la creationis_fw-la ac_fw-la redemptionis_fw-la ad_fw-la ceremonian_a referri_fw-la nequeunt_fw-la d._n waelleus_fw-la de_fw-fr sabbatho_n pag._n 583._o how_o the_o lord_n day_n be_v to_o be_v sanctify_v unto_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n how_o christian_n do_v enjoy_v god_n upon_o the_o weekday_n eminent_a holiness_n and_o communion_n read_v mr._n shepherd_n excellent_a treatise_n upon_o this_o subject_a in_o his_o four_o part_n of_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o sabbath_n restorative_n communion_n constant_a communion_n soule-satiating_a communion_n extraordinary_a duty_n penitential_a melt_n melt_n the_o sad_a condition_n of_o the_o most_o ingenious_a sort_n of_o unregenerate_a man_n motive_n to_o faith_n and_o true_a repentance_n the_o great_a difference_n between_o a_o ingenuous_a man_n and_o a_o gracious_a man_n how_o far_o a_o unregenerate_a man_n may_v be_v change_v the_o conversion_n of_o notorious_a sinner_n the_o great_a sinner_n be_v welcome_a to_o christ_n when_o they_o turn_v and_o submit_v to_o he_o no_o meritorious_a praeparatives_n luk._n 24._o 49_o magnitudo_fw-la animi_fw-la ad_fw-la praedicandum_fw-la âvangelium_fw-la necessaria_fw-la ex_fw-la alto_fw-mi promittitur_fw-la d._n aâting_v an_fw-mi etiam_fw-la abnegatio_fw-la christi_fw-la quae_fw-la fit_a cord_n in_o epâcureismum_fw-la prolapso_fw-la sit_fw-la peccatum_fw-la in_o spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la vide_fw-la scultetum_fw-la in_o ideis_fw-la concionum_fw-la ad_fw-la cap_n 6._o ad_fw-la hebraeos_fw-la clamant_fw-la dâificaâi_fw-la spiritus_fw-la homunciones_fw-la se_fw-la nullum_fw-la habere_fw-la deum_fw-la sed_fw-la usque_fw-la adeo_fw-la se_fw-la sibi_fw-la esse_fw-la mortuos_fw-la ac_fw-la deo_fw-la unitos_fw-la ut_fw-la ipsimet_fw-la deus_fw-la effecti_fw-la sint_fw-la vide_fw-la joh._n ruys_n broach_n in_o cap._n 2._o apologiae_fw-la nobilissimum_fw-la marnixium_fw-la in_o tract_n contra_fw-la enthysiastas_fw-la &_o calvinum_fw-la de_fw-la libertinis_fw-la in_o gallia_n merceunum_fw-la contra_fw-la deistas_n de_fw-fr atheismo_fw-la subtili_fw-la &_o palliato_fw-la vide_fw-la d._n vedelium_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la synagogae_fw-la casp._n barth_n adversar_n lib_n 10._o cap._n 6._o cornel._n à _fw-la lapide_fw-la comment_fw-fr ad_fw-la act._n 17._o 18._o sladum_fw-la nec_fw-la non_fw-la eglisemnium_fw-la contra_fw-la vorstium_fw-la atheus_n est_fw-la qui_fw-la fidem_fw-la &_o cultum_fw-la dei_fw-la directe_v aut_fw-la indirecte_v à _fw-la se_fw-la aut_fw-la ab_fw-la alââs_fw-la removet_fw-la d._n voetius_fw-la de_fw-la atheismo_fw-la vide_fw-la john_n junium_fw-la in_o refutatione_n praelect_a socini_fw-la cap._n 2._o &_o d._n rivet_n in_o psal._n 10._o d._n voet._n de_fw-fr atheismo_fw-la ignorans_fw-la quis_fw-la sit_fw-la deus_fw-la ignorantiâ_fw-la prauae_fw-la dispositionis_fw-la &_o contra_fw-la sensum_fw-la numinis_fw-la congenitum_fw-la verum_fw-la deum_fw-la negans_fw-la atheus_n certè_fw-la nec_fw-la immeritò_fw-la ââcendus_fw-la est_fw-la nulli_fw-la autem_fw-la sunt_fw-la athei_fw-la qui_fw-la certò_fw-la persuasi_fw-la sunt_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la deum_fw-la vide_fw-la mersennum_fw-la in_o gen._n 1._o à _fw-la pag._n 235._o usque_fw-la ad_fw-la pa._n 279._o &_o voetium_n in_o ther_n site_n sect._n 2._o cap._n 4._o &_o de_fw-la atheismo_fw-la parte_fw-la secundâ_fw-la &_o parte_fw-la quarta_fw-la pag._n 189._o wigandum_fw-la de_fw-la arianis_fw-la in_o polonia_n facilis_fw-la est_fw-la ab_fw-la atheismo_fw-la sâciniano_n in_o directum_fw-la atheismum_fw-la prolapsus_fw-la vide_fw-la bedae_fw-la notas_fw-la in_o ephes._n 2._o 14._o &_o d._n vedelium_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la synagogae_fw-la atheismus_fw-la interpretatiuè_fw-la contradicens_fw-la &_o directè_fw-la blasphemans_fw-la ferendus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la in_o civili_fw-la hominum_fw-la societate_fw-la quia_fw-la bonum_fw-la civil_a non_fw-la consistit_fw-la sine_fw-la metu_fw-la cultuque_fw-la numinis_fw-la vide_fw-la calvin_n in_o psal._n 115._o de_fw-fr atheo_fw-la blasphemante_fw-la vide_fw-la arist._n de_fw-fr coelo_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 3._o aug._n in_o psal._n 44._o senec._n epist._n 1._o 7._o damasâ_n de_fw-fr orth._n fid_fw-we lib._n 1._o c._n 1._o ciceron_n de_fw-fr naturâ_fw-la deorum_fw-la the_o father_n and_o his_o coequal_a son_n be_v to_o be_v honour_v with_o equal_a honour_n christian_n communion_n with_o the_o father_n in_o his_o natural_a son_n by_o their_o coessential_a spirit_n the_o large_a bound_n of_o christian_a communion_n we_o can_v have_v no_o christian_a communion_n with_o such_o as_o deny_v the_o godhead_n of_o christ._n vide_fw-la epistolas_fw-la martini_n seidelii_n silesii_fw-la apud_fw-la socinum_fw-la de_fw-la adoratione_n christiad_n versus_fw-la christian_n francken_n &_o franciscum_fw-la davidis_fw-la catechis_n racou._n the_o socinìans_n be_v blasphemous_a and_o idolatrous_a heretic_n the_o family_n of_o love_n h._n nicolaus_n familiae_fw-la caritatis_fw-la pater_fw-la dixit_fw-la ego_fw-la sum_fw-la deus_fw-la vide_fw-la theodor_n cornhert_n in_o specimine_fw-la injustitiae_fw-la deificati_fw-la hen_n nicolai_n praefat._n mr._n fry_v his_o bellows_o pag._n 16._o mr_n fry_v his_o proud_a blasphemy_n the_o grand_a question_n concern_v christian_n communion_n with_o blasphemous_a idolater_n seduce_v heretic_n and_o base_a apostate_n vide_fw-la gomarum_fw-la voetium_n zanchium_n polanum_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la jod_n cocâ_n thesaur_n cathol_n lib._n 1._o goldast_n in_o imperial_a constit_fw-la tom._n 3._o elmenhorst_n come_v ad_fw-la gennadium_n the_o reason_n why_o socinian_n be_v reject_v from_o christian_a communion_n the_o common_a unity_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n the_o adequate_a object_n of_o divine_a and_o evangelical_n worship_n they_o who_o deny_v the_o trinity_n be_v apt_a to_o close_v with_o jew_n and_o turk_n vide_fw-la epistolas_fw-la seidelii_n apud_fw-la socinum_fw-la de_fw-la adoratione_n christi_fw-la videl_n de_fw-fr deo_fw-la synagogae_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o socinismus_fw-la ex_fw-la mahumetismo_fw-la oritur_fw-la &_o in_o eundem_fw-la resolvitur_fw-la stegman_n photin_n socinismus_fw-la est_fw-la recta_fw-la ad_fw-la judaismi_fw-la turcismi_fw-la nec_fw-la non_fw-la atheismi_fw-la via_fw-la exempla_fw-la dabant_fw-la neuserus_fw-la &_o pafradus_fw-la viri_fw-la non_fw-la indocti_fw-la quorum_fw-la ille_fw-la minister_n in_fw-la palatinatu_fw-la hic_fw-la praeceptor_n classicus_n scholae_fw-la marpurgensis_fw-la vide_fw-la d._n voetii_n antidota_fw-la generalia_fw-la adversus_fw-la socin_n pag._n 437._o 438._o abrah_n caloviumâ_n mr_n fryes_n blasphemy_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d phil._n 2._o 2._o error_n personae_fw-la fatalis_fw-la error_n est_fw-la the_o substance_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n the_o content_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n gal._n 5._o 5._o 2_o cor._n 13._o 14._o eph._n 2._o 18._o socinismus_fw-la est_fw-la haeresis_fw-la pestilentissima_fw-la divinitatem_fw-la christi_fw-la spiritusque_fw-la abnegans_fw-la viamque_fw-la per_fw-la propriam_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la obedientiam_fw-la ad_fw-la coelum_fw-la affectans_fw-la socinianism_n overthrow_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n socinismus_fw-la divinam_fw-la christi_fw-la essentiam_fw-la personam_fw-la satisfactionem_fw-la negans_fw-la objectum_fw-la fidei_fw-la cultusque_fw-la tollit_fw-la christianismum_fw-la evertit_fw-la we_o be_v quicken_v and_o cure_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n the_o spirit_n be_v give_v by_o covenant_n as_o a_o bond_n of_o union_n christ_n god-man_n be_v the_o only_a mediator_n of_o the_o covenant_n christ_n be_v god_n and_o man_n in_o one_o subsistence_n or_o person_n the_o high_a importance_n of_o this_o truth_n mr_n fry_n in_o his_o bellows_o print_v at_o addle-hill_n pag._n 15_o 16_o 17._o the_o nature_n of_o christian_n communion_n 2_o cor._n 13._o 14._o eph._n 2._o 18._o the_o sacrament_n of_o communion_n christian_n baptism_n mat._n 28._o 19_o eph._n 2._o 18._o 2_o cor._n 13._o 14._o act._n 2._o 38_o 39_o 2_o cor._n 6._o 18_o 2_o cor._n 7._o 1._o rome_n 8._o 15_o gal._n 4._o 5_o 6_o the_o lord_n supper_n the_o grow_a save_a communion_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v make_v even_o sensible_a to_o we_o in_o the_o hâly_a sacrament_n the_o special_a application_n the_o high_a communion_n sacramental_a knowledge_n sacramental_a mystery_n be_v spiritual_a and_o yet_o real_a joh._n 6._o 55_o 63._o
rabble_n will_v not_o wonder_v that_o the_o socinian_o call_v the_o doctrine_n of_o 3._o person_n and_o one_o god_n into_o question_n when_o the_o papist_n who_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o trinity_n &_o profess_v that_o they_o believe_v the_o equality_n of_o three_o distinct_a subsistence_n in_o the_o same_o divine_a essence_n do_v yet_o notwithstanding_o in_o their_o write_n grant_v as_o much_o as_o the_o socinian_o need_v prove_v namely_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o distinction_n and_o equality_n of_o person_n in_o the_o same_o divine_a essence_n can_v be_v prove_v but_o by_o unwritten_a tradition_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o diverse_a papist_n undertake_v to_o defend_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n against_o the_o socinian_o though_o they_o know_v that_o the_o socinian_o do_v not_o at_o all_o value_n tradition_n or_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o though_o divers_a papist_n write_v against_o the_o socinian_o yet_o they_o do_v promote_v socinianism_n by_o their_o vain_a doctrine_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n stapleton_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o deny_v that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n or_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v but_o salmeron_n 4._o deserve_v commendation_n in_o this_o point_n the_o scripture_n say_v he_o be_v therefore_o say_v to_o be_v write_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n because_o they_o instruct_v we_o in_o divine_a mystery_n concern_v the_o unity_n of_o god_n and_o trinity_n of_o person_n photius_n ãâã_d in_o his_o bibliotheca_fw-la show_v that_o ephraeni_fw-la do_v not_o dispute_v of_o the_o consubstantial_a trinity_n out_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o father_n but_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n justin_n martyr_n athanasius_n basil_n irenaeus_n cyrill_n cyprian_n tertullian_n epiphanius_n theodoret_n and_o many_o other_o of_o the_o father_n do_v assert_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o some_o of_o they_o do_v confute_v the_o valentinian_o eunomian_o sabellian_o photinian_o arrian_n macedonian_n samosatenian_o etc._n etc._n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o nicene_n synod_n do_v urge_v scripture_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o they_o declare_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o the_o synod_n which_o meet_v at_o constantinople_n do_v the_o like_a as_o be_v most_o evident_a to_o such_o as_o have_v peruse_v those_o learned_a and_o ancient_a 11._o record_n athanasius_n confound_v the_o arian_n by_o clear_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o nicene_n synod_n he_o say_v that_o the_o true_a disciple_n of_o christ_n do_v clear_o understand_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n preach_v by_o divine_a scripture_n i_o shall_v not_o trouble_v or_o amuse_v the_o reader_n by_o quotation_n out_o of_o cyrill_n ambrose_n hilary_n augustine_n nyssen_n nazianzen_n or_o any_o of_o those_o worthy_n but_o now_o mention_v who_o labour_n have_v be_v ever_o famous_a in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n yet_o i_o must_v not_o omit_v one_o pregnant_a proof_n out_o of_o augustine_n who_o appeal_v from_o the_o nicene_n and_o ariminensian_a synod_n and_o challenge_v maximinus_n to_o dispute_v with_o he_o about_o the_o great_a point_n of_o consubstantiality_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n bellarmine_n himself_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o augustine_n have_v good_a reason_n to_o do_v so_o because_o that_o point_n be_v clear_a by_o scripture_n but_o then_o we_o must_v likewise_o consider_v what_o augustine_n say_v upon_o this_o argument_n that_o athanas._n the_o thing_n or_o sense_n of_o any_o word_n may_v be_v in_o scripture_n though_o the_o word_n itself_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v there_o though_o the_o word_n trinity_n trin-unity_n consubstantial_a be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n yet_o that_o which_o be_v signify_v by_o those_o word_n may_v be_v clear_o prove_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n these_o three_o be_v one_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o behold_v a_o trinity_n trin-unity_n consubstantiality_n and_o all_o quick_o prove_v that_o rule_n be_v of_o great_a concernment_n and_o very_o pertinent_a to_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n which_o augustine_n deliver_v in_o his_o three_o book_n and_o three_o chapter_n against_o maximinus_n the_o arian_n out_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o read_v in_o scripture_n we_o may_v collect_v some_o thing_n which_o we_o do_v not_o read_v and_o so_o both_o understand_v and_o believe_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v deliver_v in_o other_o word_n in_o scripture_n than_o those_o which_o we_o be_v now_o force_v to_o use_v that_o we_o may_v confirm_v the_o orthodox_n christian_n and_o refute_v the_o gainsayers_a but_o i_o be_o weary_a of_o this_o task_n and_o therefore_o call_v upon_o my_o reader_n to_o join_v with_o i_o in_o search_v the_o scripture_n that_o we_o may_v find_v out_o the_o truth_n for_o reason_n can_v demonstrate_v or_o comprehend_v these_o mystery_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o rule_n be_v rationum_fw-la fulcro_fw-la dissoluto_fw-la humana_fw-la concidit_fw-la authoritas_fw-la chap._n iu._n this_o single_a and_o eternal_a godhead_n do_v subsist_v in_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n without_o any_o multiplication_n of_o the_o godhead_n when_o etc._n gregory_n nyssen_n undertake_v to_o confute_v the_o artificial_a blasphemy_n of_o eunomius_n he_o desire_v that_o the_o true_a god_n the_o son_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n will_v direct_v he_o into_o all_o truth_n i_o have_v likewise_o implore_v the_o divine_a assistance_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n that_o i_o may_v open_v this_o mystery_n of_o the_o single_a godhead_n in_o three_o distinct_a subsistence_n with_o faith_n and_o prudence_n perspicuity_n and_o reverence_n i_o consider_v that_o the_o godhead_n be_v spiritual_a and_o therefore_o i_o desire_v to_o avoid_v all_o carnal_a expression_n in_o a_o treatise_n of_o this_o nature_n there_o be_v a_o twofold_a knowledge_n of_o god_n absolute_a and_o relative_n the_o absolute_a knowledge_n of_o the_o eternal_a power_n and_o godhead_n be_v in_o part_n discover_v by_o the_o work_n of_o god_n as_o have_v be_v show_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n but_o the_o relative_n knowledge_n of_o god_n i_o speak_v of_o inward_a relation_n between_o the_o three_o subsistence_n be_v not_o nay_o can_v be_v attain_v unto_o by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n no_o example_n can_v illustrate_v no_o reason_n angelical_a or_o humane_a comprehend_v the_o hide_a excellency_n of_o this_o glorious_a mystery_n but_o it_o be_v discover_v to_o we_o by_o a_o divine_a revelation_n in_o the_o write_a word_n and_o therefore_o our_o faith_n must_v receive_v and_o our_o piety_n admire_v what_o our_o reason_n can_v comprehend_v it_o be_v fit_a therefore_o that_o this_o grand_a mystery_n of_o the_o divine_a trinunity_n shall_v be_v sober_o explain_v that_o it_o may_v be_v steadfast_o believe_v and_o reverent_o apply_v in_o all_o evangelical_n administration_n we_o read_v of_o the_o godhead_n the_o nature_n and_o subsistence_n of_o god_n in_o the_o holy_a 9_o scripture_n 1._o the_o godhead_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d rom._n 1._o 20._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d coloss._n 2._o 9_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d act_n 17._o 29_o i_o be_o not_o at_o leisure_n to_o play_v the_o critic_n upon_o the_o word_n it_o be_v enough_o for_o my_o purpose_n simple_o to_o declare_v the_o truth_n in_o the_o most_o plain_a and_o simple_a manner_n 2._o the_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v hold_v forth_o to_o we_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o forbid_v we_o to_o give_v divine_a honour_n to_o any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o god_n by_o nature_n gal._n 4._o 8_o for_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o place_n reprove_v their_o idolatry_n and_o tell_v they_o that_o when_o they_o know_v not_o god_n that_o be_v the_o only_a true_a god_n who_o be_v god_n by_o nature_n because_o true_o god_n they_o do_v service_n to_o they_o which_o by_o nature_n be_v no_o god_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o conclude_v that_o the_o only_a true_a god_n who_o we_o ought_v to_o serve_v be_v god_n by_o nature_n and_o we_o read_v of_o the_o divine_a nature_n 2_o pet._n 1._o 4._o of_o which_o all_o that_o be_v regenerate_v be_v say_v to_o be_v partaker_n because_o they_o bear_v his_o image_n for_o else_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o there_o be_v a_o infinite_a distance_n between_o god_n &_o grace_n which_o be_v not_o only_o finite_a but_o imperfect_a also_o and_o if_o it_o be_v perfect_v be_v but_o a_o accident_n nay_o there_o be_v a_o infinite_a distance_n between_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n of_o man_n in_o respect_n of_o excellency_n even_o then_o when_o the_o two_o nature_n be_v most_o intimate_o unite_v as_o they_o be_v by_o a_o hypostatical_a union_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n 3._o